The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Man on the Box, by Harold MacGrath
#4 in our series by Harold MacGrath

Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing
this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook.

This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project
Gutenberg file.  Please do not remove it.  Do not change or edit the
header without written permission.

Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the
eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file.  Included is
important information about your specific rights and restrictions in
how the file may be used.  You can also find out about how to make a
donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved.


**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**

**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**

*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****


Title: The Man on the Box

Author: Harold MacGrath

Release Date: September, 2004 [EBook #6578]
[Yes, we are more than one year ahead of schedule]
[This file was first posted on December 29, 2002]

Edition: 10

Language: English

Character set encoding: ASCII

*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MAN ON THE BOX ***




Produced by Duncan Harold, Charles Franks
and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team.





[Illustration: Henry E. Dixey in "The Man on the Box."]

THE MAN ON THE BOX

by

HAROLD MACGRATH

Author of
The Grey Cloak, The Puppet Crown

Illustrated by scenes from Walter N. Lawrence's beautiful production
of the play as seen for 123 nights at the Madison Square Theatre, New
York





To Miss Louise Everts




CONTENTS


CHAPTER

    I Introduces My Hero

   II Introduces My Heroine

  III The Adventure Begins

   IV A Family Reunion

    V The Plot Thickens

   VI The Man on the Box

  VII A Police Affair

 VIII Another Salad Idea

   IX The Heroine Hires a Groom

    X Pirate

   XI The First Ride

  XII A Ticklish Business

 XIII A Runaway

  XIV An Ordeal or Two

   XV Retrospective

  XVI The Previous Affair

 XVII Dinner is Served

XVIII Caught!

  XIX "Oh, Mister Butler"

   XX The Episode of the Stove Pipe

  XXI The Rose

 XXII The Drama Unrolls

XXIII Something About Heroes

 XXIV A Fine Lover

  XXV A Fine Heroine, Too

 XXVI The Castle of Romance




_He either fears his fate too much,
  Or his deserts are small,
Who dares not put it to the touch
  To win or lose it all._




_Dramatis Personae_

_Colonel George Annesley_      A retired Army Officer

_Miss Betty Annesley_          His daughter

_Lieutenant Robert Warburton_  Lately resigned

_Mr. John Warburton_           His elder brother, of the War
                                    Department

_Mrs. John Warburton_          The elder brother's wife

_Miss Nancy Warburton_         The lieutenant's sister

_Mr. Charles Henderson_        Her fiance

_Count Karloff_                An unattached diplomat

_Colonel Frank Raleigh_        The Lieutenant's Regimental
                                    Colonel

_Mrs. Chadwick_                A product of Washington life

_Monsieur Pierre_              A chef

_Mademoiselle Celeste_         A lady's maid

_Jane_                         Mrs. Warburton's maid

_The Hopeful_                  A baby

_William_                      A stable-boy

_Fashionable People_           Necessary for a dinner party

_Celebrities_                  Also necessary for a dinner party

_Unfashionables_               Police, cabbies, grooms, clerks,
                                    etc.



TIME--Within the past ten years.

SCENE--Washington, D.C., and its environs.




I

INTRODUCES MY HERO


If you will carefully observe any map of the world that is divided
into inches at so many miles to the inch, you will be surprised as
you calculate the distance between that enchanting Paris of France
and the third-precinct police-station of Washington, D. C, which is
not enchanting. It is several thousand miles. Again, if you will take
the pains to run your glance, no doubt discerning, over the police-
blotter at the court (and frankly, I refuse to tell you the exact
date of this whimsical adventure), you will note with even greater
surprise that all this hubbub was caused by no crime against the
commonwealth of the Republic or against the person of any of its
conglomerate people. The blotter reads, in heavy simple fist,
"disorderly conduct," a phrase which is almost as embracing as the
word diplomacy, or society, or respectability.

So far as my knowledge goes, there is no such a person as James
Osborne. If, by any unhappy chance, he _does_ exist, I trust
that he will pardon the civil law of Washington, my own measure of
familiarity, and the questionable taste on the part of my hero--hero,
because, from the rise to the fall of the curtain, he occupies the
center of the stage in this little comedy-drama, and because authors
have yet to find a happy synonym for the word. The name James Osborne
was given for the simple reason that it was the first that occurred
to the culprit's mind, so desperate an effort did he make to hide his
identity. Supposing, for the sake of an argument in his favor,
supposing he had said John Smith or William Jones or John Brown? To
this very day he would have been hiring lawyers to extricate him from
libel and false-representation suits. Besides, had he given any of
these names, would not that hound-like scent of the ever suspicious
police have been aroused?

To move round and round in the circle of commonplace, and then to pop
out of it like a tailed comet! Such is the history of many a man's
life. I have a near friend who went away from town one fall, happy
and contented with his lot. And what do you suppose he found when he
returned home? He had been nominated for alderman. It is too early to
predict the fate of this unhappy man. And what tools Fate uses with
which to carve out her devious peculiar patterns! An Apache Indian,
besmeared with brilliant greases and smelling of the water that never
freezes, an understudy to Cupid? Fudge! you will say, or Pshaw! or
whatever slang phrase is handy and, prevalent at the moment you read
and run.

I personally warn you that this is a really-truly story, though I do
not undertake to force you to believe it; neither do I purvey many
grains of salt. If Truth went about her affairs laughing, how many
more persons would turn and listen! For my part, I believe it all
nonsense the way artists have pictured Truth. The idea is pretty
enough, but so far as hitting things, it recalls the woman, the
stone, and the hen. I am convinced that Truth goes about dressed in
the dowdiest of clothes, with black-lisle gloves worn at the fingers,
and shoes run down in the heels, an exact portrait of one of Phil
May's lydies. Thus it is that we pass her by, for the artistic sense
in every being is repelled at the sight of a dowdy with weeping eyes
and a nose that has been rubbed till it is as red as a winter apple.
Anyhow, if she _does_ go about in beautiful nudity, she ought at
least to clothe herself with smiles and laughter. There are sorry
enough things in the world as it is, without a lachrymal,
hypochondriacal Truth poking her face in everywhere.

Not many months ago, while seated on the stone veranda in the rear of
the Metropolitan Club in Washington (I believe we were discussing the
merits of some very old product), I recounted some of the lighter
chapters of this adventure.

_"Eempossible!"_ murmured the Russian attache, just as if the
matter had not come under his notice semi-officially.

I presume that this exclamation disclosed another side to diplomacy,
which, stripped of its fine clothes, means dexterity in hiding
secrets and in negotiating lies. When one diplomat believes what
another says, it is time for the former's government to send him
packing. However, the Englishman at my right gazed smiling into his
partly emptied glass and gently stirred the ice. I admire the English
diplomat; he never wastes a lie. He is frugal and saving.

"But the newspapers!" cried the journalist. "They never ran a line;
and an exploit like this would scarce have escaped them."

"If I remember rightly, it was reported in the regular police items
of the day," said I.

"Strange that the boys didn't look behind the scenes."

"Oh, I don't know," remarked the congressman; "lots of things happen
of which you are all ignorant. The public mustn't know everything."

"But what's the hero's name?" asked the journalist.

"That's a secret," I answered. "Besides, when it comes to the bottom
of the matter, I had something to do with the suppressing of the
police news. In a case like this, suppression becomes a law not
excelled by that which governs self-preservation. My friend has a
brother in the War Department; and together we worked wonders."

"It's a jolly droll story, however you look at it," the Englishman
admitted.

"Nevertheless, it had its tragic side; but that is even more than
ever a secret."

The Englishman looked at me sharply, even gravely; but the veranda is
only dimly illuminated at night, and his scrutiny went unrewarded.

"Eh, well!" said the Russian; "your philosopher has observed that all
mankind loves a lover."

"As all womankind loves a love-story," the Englishman added. "You
ought to be very successful with the ladies,"--turning to me.

"Not inordinately; but I shall not fail to repeat your epigram,"--and
I rose.

My watch told me that it was half after eight; and one does not
receive every day an invitation to a dinner-dance at the Chevy Chase
Club.

I dislike exceedingly to intrude my own personality into this
narrative, but as I was passively concerned, I do not see how I can
avoid it. Besides, being a public man, I am not wholly averse to
publicity; first person, singular, perpendicular, as Thackeray had
it, in type looks rather agreeable to the eye. And I rather believe
that I have a moral to point out and a parable to expound.

My appointment in Washington at that time was extraordinary; that is
to say, I was a member of one of those committees that are born
frequently and suddenly in Washington, and which almost immediately
after registration in the vital statistics of national politics. I
had been sent to Congress, a dazzling halo over my head, the pride
and hope of my little country town; I had been defeated for second
term; had been recommended to serve on the committee aforesaid;
served with honor, got my name in the great newspapers, and was sent
back to Congress, where I am still to-day, waiting patiently for a
discerning president and a vacancy in the legal department of the
cabinet. That's about all I am willing to say about myself.

As for this hero of mine, he was the handsomest, liveliest rascal you
would expect to meet in a day's ride. By handsome I do not mean
perfect features, red cheeks, Byronic eyes, and so forth. That style
of beauty belongs to the department of lady novelists. I mean that
peculiar manly beauty which attracts men almost as powerfully as it
does women. For the sake of a name I shall call him Warburton. His
given name in actual life is Robert. But I am afraid that nobody but
his mother and one other woman ever called him Robert. The world at
large dubbed him Bob, and such he will remain up to that day (and may
it be many years hence!) when recourse will be had to Robert, because
"Bob" would certainly look very silly on a marble shaft.

What a friendly sign is a nickname! It is always a good fellow who is
called Bob or Bill, Jack or Jim, Tom, Dick or Harry. Even out of
Theodore there comes a Teddy. I know in my own case the boys used to
call me Chuck, simply because I was named Charles. (I haven't the
slightest doubt that I was named Charles because my good mother
thought I looked something like Vandyke's _Charles I_, though at
the time of my baptism I wore no beard whatever.) And how I hated a
boy with a high-sounding, unnicknamable given name!--with his round
white collar and his long glossy curls! I dare say he hated the name,
the collar, and the curls even more than I did. Whenever you run
across a name carded in this stilted fashion, "A. Thingumy Soandso",
you may make up your mind at once that the owner is ashamed of his
first name and is trying manfully to live it down and eventually
forgive his parents.

Warburton was graduated from West Point, ticketed to a desolate
frontier post, and would have worn out his existence there but for
his guiding star, which was always making frantic efforts to bolt its
established orbit. One day he was doing scout duty, perhaps half a
mile in advance of the pay-train, as they called the picturesque
caravan which, consisting of a canopied wagon and a small troop of
cavalry in dingy blue, made progress across the desert-like plains of
Arizona. The troop was some ten miles from the post, and as there had
been no sign of Red Eagle all that day, they concluded that the rumor
of his being on a drunken rampage with half a dozen braves was only a
rumor. Warburton had just passed over a roll of earth, and for a
moment the pay-train had dropped out of sight. It was twilight;
opalescent waves of heat rolled above the blistered sands. A pale
yellow sky, like an inverted bowl rimmed with delicate blue and
crimson hues, encompassed the world. The bliss of solitude fell on
him, and, being something of a poet, he rose to the stars. The smoke
of his corncob pipe trailed lazily behind him. The horse under him
was loping along easily. Suddenly the animal lifted his head, and his
brown ears went forward.

At Warburton's left, some hundred yards distant, was a clump of osage
brush. Even as he looked, there came a puff of smoke, followed by the
evil song of a bullet. My hero's hat was carried away. He wheeled,
dug his heels into his horse, and cut back over the trail. There came
a second flash, a shock, and then a terrible pain in the calf of his
left leg. He fell over the neck of his horse to escape the third
bullet. He could see the Apache as he stood out from behind the bush.
Warburton yanked out his Colt and let fly. He heard a yell. It was
very comforting. That was all he remembered of the skirmish.

For five weeks he languished in the hospital. During that time he
came to the conclusion that he had had enough of military life in the
West. He applied for his discharge, as the compulsory term of service
was at an end. When his papers came he was able to get about with the
aid of a crutch. One morning his colonel entered his subaltern's
bachelor quarters.

"Wouldn't you rather have a year's leave of absence, than quit
altogether, Warburton?"

"A year's leave of absence?" cried the
invalid, "I am likely to get that, I am."

"If you held a responsible position I dare say it would be difficult.
As it is, I may say that I can obtain it for you. It will be months
before you can ride a horse with that leg."

"I thank you, Colonel Raleigh, but I think I'll resign. In fact, I
have resigned."

"We can withdraw that, if you but say the word. I don't want to lose
you, lad. You're the only man around here who likes a joke as well as
I do. And you will have a company if you'll only stick to it a little
longer."

"I have decided, Colonel. I'm sorry you feel like this about it. You
see, I have something like twenty-five thousand laid away. I want to
see at least five thousand dollars' worth of new scenery before I
shuffle off this mortal coil. The scenery around here palls on me. My
throat and eyes are always full of sand. I am off to Europe. Some
day, perhaps, the bee will buzz again; and when it does, I'll have
you go personally to the president."

"As you please, Warburton."

"Besides, Colonel, I have been reading Treasure Island again, and
I've got the fever in my veins to hunt for adventure, even a
treasure. It's in my blood to wander and do strange things, and here
I've been hampered all these years with routine. I shouldn't care if
we had a good fight once in a while. My poor old dad traveled around
the world three times, and I haven't seen anything of it but the
maps."

"Go ahead, then. Only, talking about Treasure Island, don't you and
your twenty-five thousand run into some old Long John Silver."

"I'll take care."

And Mr. Robert packed up his kit and sailed away. Not many months
passed ere he met his colonel again, and under rather embarrassing
circumstances.




II

INTRODUCES MY HEROINE


Let me begin at the beginning. The boat had been two days out of
Southampton before the fog cleared away. On the afternoon of the
third day, Warburton curled up in his steamer-chair and lazily viewed
the blue October seas as they met and merged with the blue October
skies. I do not recollect the popular novel of that summer, but at
any rate it lay flapping at the side of his chair, forgotten. It
never entered my hero's mind that some poor devil of an author had
sweated and labored with infinite pains over every line, and
paragraph, and page-labored with all the care and love his heart and
mind were capable of, to produce this finished child of fancy; or
that this same author, even at this very moment, might be seated on
the veranda of his beautiful summer villa, figuring out royalties on
the backs of stray envelopes. No, he never thought of these things.

What with the wind and the soft, ceaseless jar of the throbbing
engines, half a dream hovered above his head, and touched him with a
gentle, insistent caress. If you had passed by him this afternoon,
and had been anything of a mathematician who could straighten out
geometrical angles, you would have come close to his height had you
stopped at five feet nine. Indeed, had you clipped off the heels of
his low shoes, you would have been exact. But all your nice
calculations would not have solved his weight. He was slender, but he
was hard and compact. These hard, slender fellows sometimes weigh
more than your men of greater bulk. He tipped the scales at one
hundred sixty-two, and he looked twenty pounds less. He was twenty-
eight; a casual glance at him, and you would have been willing to
wager that the joy of casting his first vote was yet to be his.

The princess commands that I describe in detail the charms of this
Army Adonis. Far be it that I should disobey so august a command,
being, as I am, the prime minister in this her principality of
Domestic Felicity. Her brother has never ceased to be among the first
in her dear regard. He possessed the merriest black eyes: his
mother's eyes, as I, a boy, remember them. No matter how immobile his
features might be, these eyes of his were ever ready for laughter.
His nose was clean-cut and shapely. A phrenologist would have said
that his head did not lack the bump of caution; but I know better. At
present he wore a beard; so this is as large an inventory of his
personal attractions as I am able to give. When he shaves off his
beard, I shall be pleased to add further particulars. I often marvel
that the women did not turn his head. They were always sending him
notes and invitations and cutting dances for him. Perhaps his devil-
may-care air had something to do with the enchantment. I have yet to
see his equal as a horseman. He would have made it interesting for
that pair of milk-whites which our old friend, Ulysses (or was it
Diomedes?) had such ado about.

Every man has some vice or other, even if it is only being good.
Warburton had perhaps two: poker and tobacco. He would get out of bed
at any hour if some congenial spirit knocked at the door and
whispered that a little game was in progress, and that his money was
needed to keep it going. I dare say that you know all about these
little games. But what would you? What is a man to do in a country
where you may buy a whole village for ten dollars? Warburton seldom
drank, and, like the author of this precious volume, only special
vintages.

At this particular moment this hero of mine was going over the
monotony of the old days in Arizona, the sand-deserts, the unlovely
landscapes, the dull routine, the indifferent skirmishes with cattle-
men and Indians; the pagan bullet which had plowed through his leg.
And now it was all over; he had surrendered his straps; he was a
private citizen, with an income sufficient for his needs. It will go
a long way, forty-five hundred a year, if one does not attempt to
cover the distance in a five-thousand motor-car; and he hated all
locomotion that was not horse-flesh.

For nine months he had been wandering over Europe, if not happy, at
least in a satisfied frame of mind. Four of these months had been
delightfully passed in Paris; and, as his nomad excursions had
invariably terminated in that queen of cities, I make Paris the
starting point of his somewhat remarkable adventures. Besides, it was
in Paris that he first saw Her. And now, here he was at last,
homeward-bound. That phrase had a mighty pleasant sound; it was to
the ear what honey is to the tongue. Still, he might yet have been in
Paris but for one thing: She was on board this very boat.

Suddenly his eyes opened full wide, bright with eagerness.

"It is She!" he murmured. He closed his eyes again, the hypocrite!

Permit me to introduce you to my heroine. Mind you, she is not
_my_ creation; only Heaven may produce her like, and but once.
She is well worth turning around to gaze at. Indeed I know more than
one fine gentleman who forgot the time of day, the important
engagement, or the trend of his thought, when she passed by.

She was coming forward, leaning against the wind and inclining to the
uncertain roll of the ship. A gray raincoat fitted snugly the
youthful rounded figure. Her hands were plunged into the pockets. You
may be sure that Mr. Robert noted through his half-closed eyelids
these inconsequent details. A tourist hat sat jauntily on the fine
light brown hair, that color which has no appropriate metaphor. (At
least, I have never found one, and I am _not_ in love with her
and _never_ was.) Warburton has described to me her eyes, so I
am positive that they were as heavenly blue as a rajah's sapphire.
Her height is of no moment. What man ever troubled himself about the
height of a woman, so long as he wasn't undersized himself? What
pleased Warburton was the exquisite skin. He was always happy with
his comparisons, and particularly when he likened her skin to the
bloomy olive pallor of a young peach. The independent stride was
distinguishingly American. Ah, the charm of these women who are my
countrywomen! They come, they go, alone, unattended, courageous
without being bold, self-reliant without being rude; inimitable. In
what an amiable frame of mind Nature must have been on the day she
cast these molds! But I proceed. The young woman's chin was tilted,
and Warburton could tell by the dilated nostrils that she was
breathing in the gale with all the joy of living, filling her healthy
lungs with it as that rare daughter of the Cyprian Isle might have
done as she sprang that morn from the jeweled Mediterranean spray,
that beggar's brooch of Neptune's.

Warburton's heart hadn't thrilled so since the day when he first
donned cadet gray. There was scarce any room for her to pass between
his chair and the rail; and this knowledge filled the rascal with
exultation. Nearer and nearer she came. He drew in his breath sharply
as the corner of his foot-rest (aided by the sly wind) caught her
raincoat.

"I beg your pardon!" he said, sitting up.

She quickly released her coat, smiled faintly, and passed on.

Sometimes the most lasting impressions are those which are printed
most lightly on the memory. Mr. Robert says that he never will forget
that first smile. And he didn't even know her name then.

I was about to engage your attention with a description of the
villain, but on second thought I have decided that it would be rather
unfair. For at that moment he was at a disadvantage. Nature was
punishing him for a few shortcomings. The steward that night informed
Warburton, in answer to his inquiries, that he, the villain, was
dreadfully seasick, and was begging him, the steward, to scuttle the
ship and have done with it. I have my doubts regarding this. Mr.
Robert is inclined to flippancy at times. It wasn't seasickness; and
after all is said and done, it is putting it harshly to call this man
a villain. I recant. True villainy is always based upon selfishness.
Remember this, my wise ones.

Warburton was somewhat subdued when he learned that the suffering
gentleman was _her_ father.

"What did you say the name was?" he asked innocently. Until now he
hadn't had the courage to put the question to any one, or to prowl
around the purser's books.

"Annesley; Colonel Annesley and daughter," answered the unsuspecting
steward.

Warburton knew nothing then of the mental tragedy going on behind the
colonel's state-room door. How should he have known? On the contrary,
he believed that the father of such a girl must be a most knightly
and courtly gentleman. He _was_, in all outward appearance.
There had been a time, not long since, when he had been knightly and
courtly in all things.

Surrounding every upright man there is a mire, and if he step not
wisely, he is lost. There is no coming back; step by step he must go
on and on, till he vanishes and a bubble rises over where he but
lately stood. That he misstepped innocently does not matter; mire and
evil have neither pity nor reason. To spend what is not ours and then
to try to recover it, to hide the guilty step: this is futility. From
the alpha men have made this step; to the omega they will make it,
with the same unchanging futility. After all, it _is_ money.
Money _is_ the root of all evil; let him laugh who will, in his
heart of hearts he knows it.

Money! Have you never heard that siren call to you, call seductively
from her ragged isle, where lurk the reefs of greed and selfishness?
Money! What has this siren not to offer? Power, ease, glory, luxury;
aye, I had almost said love! But, no; love is the gift of God, money
is the invention of man: all the good, all the evil, in the heart of
this great humanity.




III

THE ADVENTURE BEGINS


It was only when the ship was less than a day's journey off Sandy
Hook that the colonel came on deck, once more to resume his interest
in human affairs. How the girl hovered about him! She tucked the
shawl more snugly around his feet; she arranged and rearranged the
pillows back of his head; she fed him from a bowl of soup; she read
from some favorite book; she smoothed the furrowed brow; she stilled
the long, white, nervous fingers with her own small, firm, brown
ones; she was mother and daughter in one. Wherever she moved, the
parent eye followed her, and there lay in its deeps a strange mixture
of fear, and trouble, and questioning love. All the while he drummed
ceaselessly on the arms of his chair.

And Mr. Robert, watching all these things from afar, Mr. Robert
sighed dolorously. The residue air in his lungs was renewed more
frequently than nature originally intended it should be. Love has its
beneficences as well as its pangs, only they are not wholly
appreciable by the recipient. For what is better than a good pair of
lungs constantly filled and refilled with pure air? Mr. Robert even
felt a twinge of remorse besides. He was brother to a girl almost as
beautiful as yonder one (to my mind far more beautiful!) and he
recalled that in two years he had not seen her nor made strenuous
efforts to keep up the correspondence. Another good point added to
the score of love! And, alas! he might never see this charming girl
again, this daughter so full of filial love and care. He had sought
the captain, but that hale and hearty old sea-dog had politely
rebuffed him.

"My dear young man," he said, "I do all I possibly can for the
entertainment and comfort of my passengers, but in this case I must
refuse your request."

"And pray, why, sir?" demanded Mr. Robert, with dignity.

"For the one and simple reason that Colonel Annesley expressed the
desire to be the recipient of no ship introductions."

"What the deuce is he, a billionaire?"

"You have me there, sir. I confess that I know nothing whatever about
him. This is the first time he has ever sailed on my deck."

All of which perfectly accounts for Mr. Robert's sighs in what
musicians call the _doloroso_. If only he knew some one who knew
the colonel! How simple it would be! Certainly, a West Point graduate
would find some consideration. But the colonel spoke to no one save
his daughter, and his daughter to none but her parent, her maid, and
the stewardess. Would they remain in New York, or would they seek
their far-off southern home? Oh, the thousands of questions which
surged through his brain! From time to time he glanced sympathetically
at the colonel, whose fingers drummed and drummed and drummed.

"Poor wretch! his stomach must be in bad shape. Or maybe he has the
palsy." Warburton mused upon the curious incertitude of the human
anatomy.

But Colonel Annesley did not have the palsy. What he had is at once
the greatest blessing and the greatest curse of God--remembrance, or
conscience, if you will.

What a beautiful color her hair was, dappled with sunshine and
shadow! ... Pshaw! Mr. Robert threw aside his shawl and book (it is
of no real importance, but I may as well add that he never completed
the reading of that summer's most popular novel) and sought the
smoking-room, where, with the aid of a fat perfecto and a liberal
stack of blues, he proceeded to divert himself till the boat reached
quarantine. I shall not say that he left any of his patrimony at the
mahogany table with its green-baize covering and its little brass
disks for cigar ashes, but I am certain that he did not make one of
those stupendous winnings we often read about and never witness. This
much, however: he made the acquaintance of a very important
personage, who was presently to add no insignificant weight on the
scales of Mr. Robert's destiny.

He was a Russian, young, handsome, suave, of what the newspapers
insist on calling distinguished bearing. He spoke English pleasantly
but imperfectly. He possessed a capital fund of anecdote, and
Warburton, being an Army man, loved a good droll story. It was a
revelation to see the way he dipped the end of his cigar into his
coffee, a stimulant which he drank with Balzacian frequency and
relish. Besides these accomplishments, he played a very smooth hand
at the great American game. While Mr. Robert's admiration was not
aroused, it was surely awakened.

My hero had no trouble with the customs officials. A brace of old
French dueling pistols and a Turkish simitar were the only articles
which might possibly have been dutiable. The inspector looked hard,
but he was finally convinced that Mr. Robert was _not_ a
professional curio-collector. Warburton, never having returned from
abroad before, found a deal of amusement and food for thought in the
ensuing scenes. There was one man, a prim, irascible old fellow, who
was not allowed to pass in two dozen fine German razors. There was a
time of it, angry words, threats, protestations. The inspector stood
firm. The old gentleman, in a fine burst of passion, tossed the
razors into the water. Then they were going to arrest him for
smuggling. A friend extricated him. The old gentleman went away,
saying something about the tariff and an unreasonably warm place
which has as many synonyms as an octopus has tentacles.

Another man, his mouth covered by an enormous black mustache which
must have received a bath every morning in coffee or something
stronger, came forward pompously. I don't know to this day what magic
word he said, but the inspectors took never a peep into his
belongings. Doubtless they knew him, and that his word was as good as
his bond.

Here a woman wept because the necklace she brought trustingly from
Rotterdam must be paid for once again; and here another, who clenched
her fists (do women have fists?) and if looks could have killed there
would have been a vacancy in customs forthwith. All her choicest
linen strewn about on the dirty boards, all soiled and rumpled and
useless!

When the colonel's turn came, Warburton moved within hearing
distance. How glorious she looked in that smart gray traveling habit!
With what well-bred indifference she gazed upon the scene! Calmly her
glance passed among the circles of strange faces, and ever and anon
returned to the great ship which had safely brought her back to her
native land. There were other women who were just as well-bred and
indifferent, only Warburton had but one pair of eyes. Sighs in the
_doloroso_ again. Ha! if only one of these meddling jackasses
would show her some disrespect and give him the opportunity of
avenging the affront!

(Come, now; let me be your confessor. Have you never thought and
acted like this hero of mine? Haven't you been just as melodramatic
and ridiculous? It is nothing to be ashamed of. For my part, I should
confess to it with the same equanimity as I should to the mumps or
the measles. It comes with, and is part and parcel of, all that
strange medley we find in the Pandora box of life. Love has no
diagnosis, so the doctors say. 'Tis all in the angle of vision.)

But nothing happened. Colonel Annesley and his daughter were old
hands; they had gone through all this before. Scarce an article in
their trunks was disturbed. There was a slight duty of some twelve
dollars (Warburton's memory is marvelous), and their luggage was
free. But alas, for the perspicacity of the inspectors! I can very
well imagine the god of irony in no better or more fitting place than
in the United States Customs House.

Once outside, the colonel caught the eye of a cabby, and he and his
daughter stepped in.

"Holland House, sir, did you say?" asked the cabby.

The colonel nodded. The cabby cracked his whip, and away they rolled
over the pavement.

Warburton's heart gave a great bound. She had actually leaned out of
the cab, and for one brief moment their glances had met. Scarce
knowing what he did, he jumped into another cab and went pounding
after. It was easily ten blocks from the pier when the cabby raised
the lid and peered down at his fare.

"Do you want t' folly them ahead?" he cried.

"No, no!" Warburton was startled out of his wild dream. "Drive to the
Holland House--no--to the Waldorf. Yes, the Waldorf; and keep your
nag going."

"Waldorf it is, sir!" The lid above closed.

Clouds had gathered in the heavens. It was beginning to rain. But
Warburton neither saw the clouds nor felt the first few drops of
rain. All the way up-town he planned and planned--as many plans as
there were drops of rain; the rain wet him, but the plans drowned
him--he became submerged. If I were an expert at analysis, which I am
not, I should say that Mr. Robert was not violently in love; rather I
should observe that he was fascinated with the first really fine face
he had seen in several years. Let him never see Miss Annesley again,
and in two weeks he would entirely forget her. I know enough of the
race to be able to put forward this statement. Of course, it is
understood that he would have to mingle for the time among other
handsome women. Now, strive as he would, he could not think out a
feasible plan. One plan might have given him light, but the thousand
that came to him simply overwhelmed him fathoms deep. If he could
find some one he knew at the Holland House, some one who would strike
up a smoking-room acquaintance with the colonel, the rest would be
simple enough. Annesley--Annesley; he couldn't place the name. Was he
a regular, retired, or a veteran of the Civil War? And yet, the name
was not totally unfamiliar. Certainly, he was a fine-looking old
fellow, with his white hair and Alexandrian nose. And here he was,
he, Robert Warburton, in New York, simply because he happened to be
in the booking office of the _Gare du Nord_ one morning and
overheard a very beautiful girl say: "Then we shall sail from
Southampton day after to-morrow." Of a truth, it is the infinitesimal
things that count heaviest.

So deep was he in the maze of his tentative romance that when the cab
finally stopped abruptly, he was totally unaware of the transition
from activity to passivity.

"Hotel, sir!"

"Ah, yes!" Warburton leaped out, fumbled in his pocket, and brought
forth a five-dollar note, which he gave to the cabby. He did not
realize it, but this was the only piece of American money he had on
his person. Nor did he wait for the change. Mr. Robert was
exceedingly careless with his money at this stage of his infatuation;
being a soldier, he never knew the real value of legal tender. I know
that _I_ should never have been guilty of such liberality, not
even if Mister Cabby had bowled me from Harlem to Brooklyn. And you
may take my word for it, the gentleman in the ancient plug-hat did
not wait to see if his fare had made a mistake, but trotted away good
and hearty. The cab system is one of the most pleasing and amiable
phases of metropolitan life.

Warburton rushed into the noisy, gorgeous lobby, and wandered about
till he espied the desk. Here he turned over his luggage checks to
the clerk and said that these accessories of travel must be in his
room before eight o'clock that night, or there would be trouble. It
was now half after five. The clerk eagerly scanned the register.
Warburton, Robert Warburton; it was not a name with which _he_
was familiar. A thin film of icy hauteur spread over his face.

"Very well, sir. Do you wish a bath with your room?"

"Certainly." Warburton glanced at his watch again.

"The price--"

"Hang the price! A room, a room with a bath--that's what I want. Have
you got it?" This was said with a deal of real impatience and a
hauteur that overtopped the clerk's.

The film of ice melted into a gracious smile. Some new millionaire
from Pittsburg, thought the clerk. He swung the book around.

"You have forgotten your place of residence, sir," he said.

"Place of residence!"

Warburton looked at the clerk in blank astonishment. Place of
residence? Why, heaven help him, he had none, none! For the first
time since he left the Army the knowledge came home to him, and it
struck rather deep. He caught up the pen, poised it an indecisive
moment, then hastily scribbled Paris: as well Paris as anywhere. Then
he took out his wallet, comfortably packed with English and French
bank-notes, and a second wave of astonishment rolled over him.
Altogether, it was a rare good chance that he ever came to the
surface again. No plan, no place of residence, no American money!

"Good Lord! I forgot all about exchanging it on shipboard!" he
exclaimed.

"Don't let that trouble you, sir," said the clerk, with real
affability. "Our own bank will exchange your money in the morning."

"But I haven't a penny of American money on my person!"

"How much will you need for the evening, sir?"

"Not more than fifty."

The clerk brought forth a slip of paper, wrote something on it, and
handed it to Warburton.

"Sign here," he said, indicating a blank space.

And presently Mr. Robert, having deposited his foreign money in the
safe, pocketed the receipt for its deposit along with five crisp
American notes. There is nothing lacking in these modern hostelries,
excepting it be a church.

Our homeless young gentleman lighted a cigar and went out under the
portico. An early darkness had settled over the city, and a heavy
steady rain was falling. The asphalt pavements glistened and twinkled
as far as the eye's range could reach. A thousand lights gleamed down
on him, and he seemed to be standing in a canon dappled with
fireflies. Place of residence! Neither the fig-tree nor the vine! Did
he lose his money to-morrow, the source of his small income, he would
be without a roof over his head. True, his brother's roof would
always welcome him: but a roof-tree of his own! And he could lay
claim to no city, either, having had the good fortune to be born in a
healthy country town. Place of residence! Truly he had none; a
melancholy fact which he had not appreciated till now. And all this
had slipped his mind because of a pair of eyes as heavenly blue as a
rajah's sapphire!

Hang it, what should he do, now that he was no longer traveling, now
that his time was no longer Uncle Sam's? He had never till now known
idleness, and the thought of it did not run smoothly with the grain.
He was essentially a man of action. There might be some good sport
for a soldier in Venezuela, but that was far away and uncertain. It
was quite possible Jack, his brother, might find him a post as
military attache, perhaps in France, perhaps in Belgium, perhaps in
Vienna. That was the goal of more than one subaltern. The English
novelist is to be blamed for this ambition. But Warburton could speak
French with a certain fluency, and his German was good enough to
swear by; so it will be seen that he had some ground upon which to
build this ambition.

Heigho! The old homestead was gone; his sister dwelt under the elder
brother's roof; the prodigal was alone.

"But there's always a fatted calf waiting in Washington," he laughed
aloud. "Once a soldier, always a soldier. I suppose I'll be begging
the colonel to have a chat with the president. There doesn't seem to
be any way of getting out of it. I'll have to don the old togs again.
I ought to write a letter to Nancy, but it will be finer to drop in
on 'em unexpectedly. Bless her heart! (So say I!) And Jack's, too,
and his little wife's! And I haven't written a line in eight weeks.
But I'll make it all up in ten minutes. And if I haven't a roof-tree,
at least I've got the ready cash and can buy one any day." All of
which proves that Mr. Robert possessed a buoyant spirit, and refused
to be downcast for more than one minute at a time.

He threw away his cigar and reentered the hotel, and threaded his way
through the appalling labyrinths of corridors till he found some one
to guide him to the barber shop, where he could have his hair cut and
his beard trimmed in the good old American way, money no object. For
a plan had at last come to him; and it wasn't at all bad. He
determined to dine at the Holland House at eight-thirty. It was quite
possible that he would see Her.

My only wish is that, when I put on evening clothes (in my humble
opinion, the homeliest and most uncomfortable garb that man ever
invented!) I might look one-quarter as handsome and elegant as Mr.
Robert looked, as he came down stairs at eight-ten that night. He
wasn't to be blamed if the women glanced in his direction, and then
whispered and whispered, and nodded and nodded. Ordinarily he would
have observed these signs of feminine approval, for there was warm
blood in his veins, and it is proverbial that the Army man is
gallant. But to-night Diana and her white huntresses might have
passed him by and not aroused even a flicker of interest or surprise
on his face. There was only one pair of eyes, one face, and to see
these he would have gladly gone to the ends of the earth, travel-
weary though he was.

He smoked feverishly, and was somewhat troubled to find that he
hadn't quite got his land legs, as they say. The floor swayed at
intervals, and the throbbing of the engines came back. He left the
hotel, hailed a cab, and was driven down Fifth Avenue. He stopped
before the fortress of privileges. From the cab it looked very
formidable. Worldly as he was, he was somewhat innocent. He did not
know that New York hotels are formidable only when your money gives
out. To get past all these brass-buttoned lackeys and to go on as
though he really had business within took no small quantity of nerve.
However, he slipped by the outpost without any challenge and boldly
approached the desk. A quick glance at the register told him that
they had indeed put up at this hotel. He could not explain why he
felt so happy over his discovery. There are certain exultations which
are inexplicable. As he turned away from the desk, he bumped into a
gentleman almost as elegantly attired as himself.

"I beg your pardon!" he cried, stepping aside.

"What? Mr. _Warrr_burton?"

Mr. Robert, greatly surprised and confused, found himself shaking
hands with his ship acquaintance, the Russian.

"I am very glad to see you again, Count," said Warburton, recovering.

"A great pleasure! It is wonderful how small a city is. I had never
expect' to see you again. Are you stopping here?" I had intended to
try to reproduce the Russian's dialect, but one dialect in a book is
enough; and we haven't reached the period of its activity.

"No, I am at the Waldorf."

"Eh? I have heard all about you millionaires."

"Oh, we are not all of us millionaires who stop there," laughed
Warburton. "There are some of us who try to make others believe that
we are." Then, dropping into passable French, he added: "I came here
to-night with the purpose of dining. Will you do me the honor of
sharing my table?"

"You speak French?"--delighted. "It is wonderful. This English has so
many words that mean so many things, that of all languages I speak it
with the least fluency. But it is my deep regret, Monsieur, to refuse
your kind invitation. I am dining with friends."

"Well, then, breakfast to-morrow at eleven," Warburton urged, for he
had taken a fancy to this affable Russian.

"Alas! See how I am placed. I am forced to leave for Washington early
in the morning. We poor diplomats, we earn our honors. But my
business is purely personal in this case, neither political nor
diplomatic." The count drew his gloves thoughtfully through his
fingers. "I shall of course pay my respects to my ambassador. Do I
recollect your saying that you belonged to the United States Army?"

"I recently resigned. My post was in a wild country, with little or
nothing to do; monotony and routine."

"You limp slightly?"

"A trifling mishap,"--modestly.

"Eh, you do wrong. You may soon be at war with England, and having
resigned your commission, you would lose all you had waited these
years for."

Warburton smiled. "We shall not go to war with England."

"This Army of yours is small."

"Well, yes; but made of pretty good material--fighting machines with
brains."

"Ha!" The count laughed softly. "Bah! how I detest all these cars and
ships! Will you believe me, I had rather my little chateau, my
vineyard, and my wheat fields, than all the orders.... Eh, well,
_my country_: there must be some magic in that phrase. Of all
loves, that of country is the most lasting. Is that Balzac? I do not
recall. Only once in a century do we find a man who is willing to
betray his country, and even then he may have for his purpose neither
hate, revenge, nor love of power." A peculiar gravity sat on his
mobile face, caused, perhaps, by some disagreeable inward thought.

"How long shall you be in Washington?" asked Warburton.

The count shrugged. "Who can say?"

"I go to Washington myself within a few days."

"Till we meet again, then, Monsieur."

The count lifted his hat, a courtesy which was gracefully
acknowledged by the American; while the clerks at the desk eyed with
tolerant amusement these polite but rather unfamiliar ceremonies of
departure. These foreigners were odd duffers.

"A very decent chap," mused Warburton, "and a mighty shrewd hand at
poker--for a foreigner. He is going to Washington: we shall meet
again. I wonder if she's in the restaurant now."

Meet again? Decidedly; and had clairvoyance shown my hero that night
how he and the count were to meet again, certainly he would have
laughed.

If I dared, I should like to say a good deal more about this Russian.
But I have no desire to lose my head, politically or physically. Even
the newsboys are familiar with this great young man's name; and if I
should disclose it, you would learn a great many things which I have
no desire that you should. One day he is in Paris, another in Berlin,
then off to Vienna, to Belgrade, or St. Petersburg, or Washington, or
London, or Rome. A few months ago, previous to this writing, he was
in Manchuria; and to this very day England and Japan are wondering
how it happened; not his being there, mind you, but the result. Rich,
that is to say independent; unmarried, that is to say unattached;
free to come and go, he stood high up in that great army of the
czar's, which I call the uncredited diplomatic corps, because the
phrase "secret service" always puts into my mind a picture of the
wild-eyed, bearded anarchist, whom I most heartily detest.

What this remarkable diplomatic free-lance did in Washington was
honestly done in the interests of his country. A Russ understands
honor in the rough, but he lacks all those delicate shadings which
make the word honor the highest of all words in the vocabularies of
the Gaul and the Saxon. And while I do not uphold him in what he did,
I can not place much blame at the count's door. Doubtless, in his
place, and given his cast of mind, I might have done exactly as he
did. Russia never asks how a thing is done, but why it is _not_
done. Ah, these Aspasias, these Circes, these Calypsos, these
Cleopatras, with their blue, their gray, their amber eyes! I have my
doubts concerning Jonah, but, being a man, I am fully convinced as to
the history of Eve. And yet, the woman in this case was absolutely
innocent of any guile, unless, a pair of eyes as heavenly blue as a
rajah's sapphire may be called guile.

Pardon me this long parenthesis. By this time, no doubt, Mr. Robert
has entered the restaurant We shall follow him rather than this
aimless train of thought.

Mr. Robert's appetite, for a healthy young man, was strangely
incurious. He searched the menu from top to bottom, and then from
bottom to top; nothing excited his palate. Whenever persons entered,
he would glance up eagerly, only to feel his heart sink lower and
lower. I don't know how many times he was disappointed. The waiter
ahemmed politely. Warburton, in order to have an excuse to remain, at
length hit upon a partridge and a pint of Chablis.

Nine o'clock. Was it possible that the colonel and his daughter were
dining in their rooms? Perish the possibility! And he looked in vain
for the count. A quarter-past nine. Mr. Robert's anxiety was becoming
almost unendurable. Nine-thirty. He was about to surrender in
despair. His partridge lay smoking on his plate, and he was on the
point of demolishing it, when, behold! they came. The colonel entered
first, then his daughter, her hand--on--the--arm--of--the--count!
Warburton never fully described to me his feelings at that moment;
but, knowing him as I do, I can put together a very, respectable
picture of the chagrin and consternation that sat on his countenance.

"To think of being nearly six days aboard," Mr. Robert once bawled at
me, wrathfully, "and not to know that that Russian chap knew her!" It
_was_ almost incredible that such a thing should happen.

The three sat down at a table seven times removed from Warburton's.
He could see only an adorable profile and the colonel's handsome but
care-worn face. The count sat with his back turned. In that black
evening gown she was simply beyond the power of adjectives. What
shoulders, what an incomparable throat! Mr. Robert's bird grew cold;
the bouquet from his glass fainted and died away. How her face
lighted when she laughed, and she laughed frequently! What a
delicious curve ran from her lips to her young bosom! But never once
did she look in his direction. Who invented mirrors, the Egyptians? I
can not say. There were mirrors in the room, but Mr. Robert did not
realize it. He has since confessed to me that he hadn't the slightest
idea how much his bird and bottle cost. Of such is love's young
dream! (Do I worry you with all these repetitious details? I am
sorry.)

At ten o'clock Miss Annesley rose, and the count escorted her to the
elevator, returning almost immediately. He and the colonel drew their
heads together. From time to time the count shrugged, or the colonel
shook his head. Again and again the Russian dipped the end of his
cigar into his coffee-cup, which he frequently replenished.

But for Mr. Robert the gold had turned to gilt, the gorgeous to the
gaudy. She was gone. The imagination moves as swiftly as light,
leaping from one castle in air to another, and still another. Mr.
Robert was the architect of some fine ones, I may safely assure you.
And he didn't mind in the least that they tumbled down as rapidly as
they builded: only, the incentive was gone. What the colonel had to
say to the count, or the count to the colonel, was of no interest to
him; so he made an orderly retreat.

I am not so old as not to appreciate his sleeplessness that night.
Some beds are hard, even when made of the softest down.

In the morning he telephoned to the Holland House. The Annesleys, he
was informed, had departed for parts unknown. The count had left
directions to forward any possible mail to the Russian Embassy,
Washington. Sighs in the _doloroso_; the morning papers and
numerous cigars; a whisky and soda; a game of indifferent billiards
with an affable stranger; another whisky and soda; and a gradual
reclamation of Mr. Robert's interest in worldly affairs.

She was gone.




IV

A FAMILY REUNION


Warburton had not been in the city of Washington within twelve
years. In the past his furloughs had been spent at his brother's
country home in Larchmont, out of New York City. Thus, when he left
the train at the Baltimore and Potomac station, he hadn't the
slightest idea where Scott Circle was. He looked around in vain for
the smart cab of the northern metropolis. All he saw was a line of
omnibuses and a few ramshackle vehicles that twenty years back might
very well have passed for victorias. A grizzled old negro, in command
of one of these sea-going conveyances, caught Warburton's eye and
hailed jovially. Our hero (as the good novelists of the past
generation would say, taking their readers into their innermost
confidences) handed him his traveling case and stepped in.

"Whar to, suh?" asked the commodore.

"Scott Circle, and don't pommel that old nag's bones in trying to get
there. I've plenty of time."

"I reckon I won't pommel him, suh. Skt! skt!" And the vehicle rattled
out into broad Pennsylvania Avenue, but for the confusion and
absurdity of its architectural structures, the handsomest
thoroughfare in America. (Some day I am going to carry a bill into
Congress and read it, and become famous as having been the means of
making Pennsylvania Avenue the handsomest highway in the world.)

Warburton leaned back luxuriously against the faded horse-hair
cushion and lighted a cigar, which he smoked with relish, having had
a hearty breakfast on the train. It was not quite nine o'clock, and a
warm October haze lay on the peaceful city. Here were people who did
not rush madly about in the pursuit of riches. Rather they proceeded
along soberly, even leisurely, as if they knew what the day's work
was and the rewards attendant, and were content. Trucks, those
formidable engines of commerce, neither rumbled nor thundered along
the pavements, nor congested the thoroughfares. Nobody hurried into
the shops, nobody hurried out. There were no scampering, yelling
newsboys. Instead, along the curbs of the market, sat barelegged
negro boys, some of them selling papers to those who wanted them, and
some sandwiched in between baskets of popcorn and peanuts. There was
a marked scarcity of the progressive, intrusive white boy. Old negro
mammies passed to and fro with the day's provisions.

Glancing over his shoulder, Warburton saw the Capitol, shining in the
sun like some enchanted palace out of Wonderland. He touched his cap,
conscious of a thrill in his spine. And there, far to his left,
loomed the Washington monument, glittering like a shaft of opals.
Some orderlies dashed by on handsome bays. How splendid they looked,
with their blue trousers and broad yellow stripes! This was before
the Army adopted the comfortable but shabby brown duck. How he longed
to throw a leg over the back of a good horse and gallop away into the
great green country beyond!

In every extraordinary looking gentleman he saw some famed senator or
congressman or diplomat. He was almost positive that he saw the
secretary of war drive by in a neat brougham. The only things which
moved with the hustling spirit of the times were the cables, and
doubtless these would have gone slower but for the invisible and
immutable power which propelled them. On arriving in New York, one's
first thought is of riches; in Washington, of glory. What a
difference between this capital and those he had seen abroad! There
was no militarism here, no conscription, no governmental oppression,
no signs of discontent, no officers treading on the rights and the
toes of civilians.

But now he was passing the huge and dingy magic Treasury Building,
round past the Executive Mansion with its spotless white stone, its
stately portico and its plush lawns.

"Go slow, uncle; I haven't seen this place since I was a boy."

"Yes, suh. How d' y' like it? Wouldn' y' like t' live in dat house,
suh?"--the commodore grinned.

"One can't stay there long enough to please me, uncle. It takes four
years to get used to it; and then, when you begin to like it, you
have to pack up and clear out."

"It's de way dey goes, suh. We go eroun' Lafayette, er do yuh want t'
see de Wa' Depa'tment, suh?"

"Never mind now, uncle; Scott Circle."

"Scott Circle she am, suh."

The old ark wheeled round Lafayette Square and finally rolled into
Sixteenth Street. When at length it came to a stand in front of a
beautiful house, Warburton evinced his surprise openly. He knew that
his brother's wife had plenty of money, but not such a plenty as to
afford a house like this.

"Are you sure, uncle, that this is the place?"

"Dere's de Circle, suh, an' yuh can see de numbuh fo' y'se'f, suh."

"How much do I owe you?"

"I reckon 'bout fifty cents 'll make it, suh."

Warburton gave him a dollar, marveling at the difference between the
cab hire here and in New York. He grasped his case and leaped up the
steps two at a bound, and pressed the bell A prim little maid
answered the call.

"Does Mr. John Warburton live here?" he asked breathlessly.

"Yes, sir."

"Fortunate John!" he cried, pushing past the maid and standing in the
hall of his brother's household, unheralded and unannounced. "Jack!"
he bawled.

The maid eyed the handsome intruder, her face expressing the utmost
astonishment. She touched his arm.

"Sir!--" she began.

"It's all right, my dear," he interrupted.

She stepped back, wondering whether to scream or run.

"Hi, Jack! I say, you old henpecked, where are you?"

The dining-room door slid back and a tall, studious-looking
gentleman, rather plain than otherwise, stood on the threshold.

"Jane, what is all this--Why, Bob, you scalawag!"--and in a moment
they were pumping hands at a great rate. The little maid leaned
weakly against the balustrade.

"Kit, Kit! I say, Kit, come and see who's here!" cried John.

An extraordinarily pretty little woman, whose pallor any woman would
have understood, but no man on earth, and who was dressed in a
charming pink negligee morning-gown, hurried into the hall.

"Why, it's Bob!" She flung her arms around the prodigal and kissed
him heartily, held him away at arm's length, and hugged and kissed
him again. I'm not sure that Mr. Robert didn't like it.

Suddenly there was a swish of starched skirts on the stairs, and the
most beautiful woman in all the world (and I am always ready to back
this statement with abundant proofs!) rushed down and literally threw
herself into Mr. Robert's eager, outstretched arms.

"Nancy!"

"Bob! Bob! you wicked boy! You almost break our hearts. Not a line in
two months!--How could you!--You might have been dead and we not
know it!"--and she cried on his shoulder.

"Come now, Nancy; nonsense! You'll start the color running out of
this tie of mine!" But for all his jesting tone, Mr. Robert felt an
embarrassing lump wriggle up and down in his throat.

"Had your breakfast?" asked the humane and practical brother.

"Yep. But I shouldn't mind another cup of coffee."

And thereupon he was hustled into the dining-room and pushed into the
best chair. How the clear women fussed over him, pressed this upon
him and that; fondled and caressed him, just as if the beggar was
worth all this trouble and love and affection!

"Hang it, girls, it's worth being an outlaw to come to this," he
cried. He reached over and patted Nancy on the cheek, and pressed the
young wife's hand, and smiled pleasantly at his brother. "Jack, you
lucky pup, you!"

"Two years," murmured Nancy; "and we haven't had a glimpse of you in
two long years."

"Only in photograph," said the homeless one, putting three lumps of
sugar into his coffee because he was so happy he didn't know what he
was about.

"And you have turned twenty-eight," said Kit, counting on her
fingers.

"That makes you twenty-four, Nan," Jack laughed.

"And much I care!" replied Nancy, shaking her head defiantly. I've a
sneaking idea that she was thinking of me when she made this
declaration. For if _I_ didn't care, why should she?

"A handsome, stunning girl like you, Nan, ought to be getting
married," observed the prodigal. "What's the matter with all these
dukes and lords and princes, anyhow?"

An embarrassed smile ran around the table, but Mr. Robert missed it
by some several inches.

Jack threw a cigar across the table. "Now," said he, "where the deuce
did you come from?"

"Indirectly from Arizona, which is a synonym, once removed, for war."

Jack looked at his plate and laughed; but Mrs. Jack wanted to know
what Bob meant by that.

"It's a word used instead of war, as applied by the late General
Sherman," Jack replied. "And I am surprised that a brother-in-law of
yours should so far forget himself as to hint it, even."

Knowing that she could put him through the inquisition later, she
asked my hero how his leg was.

"It aches a little when it rains; that's about all."

"And you never let us know anything about it till the thing was all
over," was Nancy's reproach.

"What's the use of scaring you women?" Robert demanded. "You would
have had hysterics and all that."

"We heard of it quick enough through the newspapers," said Jack.
"Come, give us your own version of the rumpus."

"Well, the truth is,"--and the prodigal told them his tale.

"Why, you are a hero!" cried Mrs. Jack, clasping her hands.

"Hero nothing," sniffed the elder brother. "He was probably star-
gazing or he wouldn't have poked his nose into an ambush."

"Right you are, brother John," Robert acknowledged, laughing.

"And how handsome he has grown, Nancy," Mrs. Jack added, with an
oblique glance at her husband.

"He does look 'distangy'," that individual admitted. A handsome face
always went through John's cuirass. It was all nonsense, for his wife
could not have adored him more openly had he been the twin to Adonis.
But, there you are; a man always wants something he can not have.
John wasn't satisfied to be one of the most brilliant young men in
Washington; he also wanted to be classed among the handsomest.

"By the way, Jack," said my hero, lighting the cigar and blowing the
first puff toward the ceiling, his face admirably set with
nonchalance, "do you know of a family named Annesley--Colonel
Annesley?" I knew it would take only a certain length of time for
this question to arrive.

"Colonel Annesley? Why, yes. He was in the War Department until a
year or so ago. A fine strategist; knows every in and out of the
coast defenses, and is something of an inventor; lots of money, too.
Tall, handsome old fellow?"

"That's the man. A war volunteer?"

"No, a regular. Crippled his gun-fingers in some petty Indian war,
and was transferred to the Department. He was a widower, if my
recollection of him is correct; and had a lovely daughter."

"Ah!" There was great satisfaction evident in this syllable. "Do you
know where the colonel is now?"

"Not the faintest idea. He lived somewhere in Virginia. But he's been
on the travel for several years."

Robert stirred his coffee and took a spoonful--and dropped the spoon.
"Pah! I must have put in a quart of sugar. Can you spare me another
cup?"

"Annesley?" Nancy's face brightened. "Colonel Annesley? Why, I know
Betty Annesley. She was my room-mate at Smith one year. She was in my
graduating class. I'll show you her picture later. She was the
dearest girl! How she loved horses! But why are you so interested?"--
slyly.

"I ran across them coming home."

"Then you met Betty! Isn't she just the loveliest girl you ever saw?"

"I'm for her, one and indivisible. But hang my luck, I never came
within a mile of an introduction."

"What? You, and on shipboard where she couldn't get away?" John threw
up his hands as a sign that this information had overcome him.

"Even the captain shied when I approached him," said Robert,
gloomily.

"I begin to see," said the brother.

"See what?"

"Have a match; your cigar has gone out."

Robert relighted his cigar and puffed like a threshing-machine
engine.

John leaned toward Nancy. "Shall I tell him, Nan?"

Nancy blushed. "I suppose he'll have to know sooner or later."

"Know what?" asked the third person singular

"Your charming sister is about to bring you a brother-in-law."

"What?" You could have heard this across the street.

"Yes, Bobby dear. And don't look so hurt. You don't want me to become
an old maid, do you?"

"When did it happen?"--helplessly. How the thought of his sister's
marrying horrifies a brother! I believe I can tell you why. Every
brother knows that no man is good enough for a good woman. "When did
it happen?" Mr. Robert repeated, with a look at his brother, which
said that _he_ should be held responsible.

"Last week."

Robert took in a long breath, as one does who expects to receive a
blow of some sort which can not be warded off, and asked: "Who is
it?" Nancy married? What was the world coming to, anyhow?

"Charlie Henderson,"--timidly.

Then Robert, who had been expecting nothing less than an English
duke, let loose the flaming ions of his righteous wrath.

"Chuck Henderson?--that duffer?" (Oh, Mr. Robert, Mr. Robert; and
after all I've done for you!)

"He's not a duffer!" remonstrated Nancy, with a flare in her mild
eyes. (How I wish I might have seen her as she defended me!) "He's
the dearest fellow in the world, and I love him with all my heart!"
(How do you like that, Mr. Robert? Bravo, Nancy! I may be a duffer,
true enough, but I rather object to its being called out from the
housetops.) And Nancy added: "I want you to understand distinctly,
Robert, that in my selection of a husband you are not to be
consulted."

This was moving him around some.

"Hold on, Nan! Drat it, don't look like that! I meant nothing,
dearie; only I'm a heap surprised. Chuck _is_ a good fellow,
I'll admit; but I've been dreaming of your marrying a prince or an
ambassador, and Henderson comes like a jolt. Besides, Chuck will
never be anything but a first-rate politician. You'll have to get
used to cheap cigars and four-ply whisky. When is it going to
happen?"

"In June. I have always loved him, Bob. And he wants you to be his
best man."

Robert appeared a bit mollified at this knowledge. "But what shall I
do after that?" he wailed. "You're the only person I can order about,
and now you're going the other side of the range."

"Bob, why don't you get married yourself?" asked Mrs. Warburton.
"With your looks you won't have to go far nor begging for a wife."

"There's the rub, sister mine by law and the admirable foresight of
my only brother. What am I good for but ordering rookies about? I've
no business head. And it's my belief that an Army man ought never to
wed."

"Marry, my boy, and I'll see what can be done for you in the
diplomatic way. The new administration will doubtless be Republican,
and my influence will have some weight,"--and John smiled
affectionately across the table. He loved this gay lad opposite,
loved him for his own self and because he could always see the
mother's eyes and lips. "You have reached the age of discretion. You
are now traveled and a fairly good linguist. You've an income of
forty-five hundred, and to this I may be able to add a berth worth
two or three thousand. Find the girl, lad; find the girl."

"Honestly, I'll think it over, Jack."

"Oh!"

Three of the quartet turned wonderingly toward Mrs. Jack.

"What's the matter?" asked Jack.

"We have forgotten to show Bob the baby!"

"Merciful heavens!" bawled Robert. "A baby? This is the first time
I've heard anything about a baby,"--looking with renewed interest at
the young mother.

"Do you mean to tell me, John Warburton, that you failed to mention
the fact in any of your letters?" indignantly demanded Mrs. John.

"Why--er--didn't I mention it?" asked the perturbed father.

"Nary a word, nary a word!" Robert got up. "Now, where is this
wonderful he?--or is it a she?"

"Boy, Bob; greatest kid ever."

And they all trooped up the stairs to the nursery, where Mr. Robert
was forced to admit that, as regarded a three-months-old, this was
the handsomest little colt he had ever laid eyes on! Mr. Robert even
ventured to take the boy up in his arms.

"How d'ye hold him?" he asked.

Mrs. John took the smiling cherub, and the manner in which she folded
that infant across her young breast was a true revelation to the
prodigal, who felt his loneliness more than ever. He was a rank
outsider.

"Jack, you get me that diplomatic post, and I'll see to it that the
only bachelor in the Warburton family shall sleep in yonder cradle."

"Done!"

"How long is your furlough?" asked Nancy.

"Whom do you think the baby resembles?" asked the mother.

"One at a time, one at a time! The baby at present doesn't resemble
any one."

"There's your diplomat!" cried John, with a laugh.

"And my furlough is for several years, if not longer."

"What?" This query was general and simultaneous.

"Yes, I've disbanded. The Army will now go to rack and ruin. I am a
plain citizen of the United States. I expect to spend the winter in
Washington."

"The winter!" echoed Jack, mockingly dejected.

"John!" said his wife. John assumed a meek expression; and Mrs. John,
putting the baby in the cradle, turned to her brother-in-law. "I
thought the Army was a hobby with you."

"It was. I've saved up quite a sum, and I'm going to see a lot of
fine scenery if my leg doesn't give out."

"Or your bank account," supplemented John.

"Well, or my bank account."

"Draw on me whenever you want passage out West," went on the
statesman in chrysalis.

Whereupon they all laughed; not because John had said anything
particularly funny, but because there was a good and generous measure
of happiness in each heart.

"Bob, there's a ball at the British embassy tonight. You must go with
us."

"Impossible!" said Robert. "Remember my leg."

"That will not matter," said Mrs. John; "you need not dance."

"What, not dance? I should die of intermittent fever. And if I did
dance, my leg might give out."

"You can ride a horse all right," said John, in the way of argument.

"I can do that easily with my knees. But I can't dance with my knees.
No, I shall stay at home. I couldn't stand it to see all those famous
beauties, and with me posing as a wall-flower."

"But what will you do here all alone?"

"Play with the kid, smoke and read; make myself at home. You still
smoke that Louisiana, Jack?"

"Yes,"--dubiously.

"So. Now, don't let me interfere with your plans for tonight. I
haven't been in a home in so long that it will take more than one
night for the novelty to wear off. Besides, that nurse of yours, Kit,
is good to look at,"--a bit of the rogue in his eye.

"Bob!"--from both women.

"I promise not to look at her; I promise."

"Well, I must be off," said John. "I'm late now. I've a dozen plans
for coast defenses to go over with an inventor of a new carriage-gun.
Will you go with me, while I put you up at the Metropolitan, or will
you take a shopping trip with the women?"

"I'll take the shopping trip. It will be a sensation. Have you any
horses?"

"Six."

"Six! You _are_ a lucky pup: a handsome wife, a bouncing boy,
and six horses! Where's the stable?"

"In the rear. I keep only two stablemen; one to take care of the
horses and one to act as groom. I'm off. I've a cracking good hunter,
if you'd like a leg up. We'll all ride out to Chevy Chase Sunday. By-
by, till lunch."

Mr. Robert immediately betook himself to the stables, where he soon
became intimately acquainted with the English groom. He fussed about
the harness-room, deplored the lack of a McClelland saddle, admired
the English curbs, and complimented the men on the cleanliness of the
stables. The men exchanged sly smiles at first, but these smiles soon
turned into grins of admiration. Here was a man who knew a horse from
his oiled hoofs to his curried forelock.

"This fellow ought to jump well," he said, patting the sleek neck of
the hunter.

"He does that, sir," replied the groom. "He has never taken less than
a red ribbon. Only one horse beat him at the bars last winter in New
York. It was Mr. Warburton's fault that he did not take first prize.
He rode him in the park the day before the contest, and the animal
caught a bad cold, sir."

And then it was that this hero of mine conceived his great (not to
say young and salad) idea. It appealed to him as being so rich an
idea that the stables rang with his laughter.

"Sir?" politely inquired the groom.

"I'm not laughing at your statement, my good fellow; rather at an
idea which just occurred to me. In fact, I believe that I shall need
your assistance."

"In what way, sir?"

"Come with me."

The groom followed Warburton into the yard, A conversation began in
low tones.

"It's as much as my place is worth, sir. I couldn't do it, sir,"
declared the groom, shaking his head negatively.

"I'll guarantee that you will not suffer in the least. My brother
will not discharge you. He likes a joke as well as I do. You are not
handed twenty dollars every day for a simple thing like this."

"Very well, sir. I dare say that no harm will come of it. But I am an
inch or two shorter than you."

"We'll tide that over."

"I am at your orders, sir." But the groom returned to the stables,
shaking his head dubiously. He was not thoroughly convinced.

During the morning ride down-town the two women were vastly puzzled
over their brother's frequent and inexplicable peals of laughter.

"For mercy's sake, what do you see that is so funny?" asked Nancy.

"I'm thinking, my dears; only thinking."

"Tell us, that we may laugh, too. I'll wager that you are up to some
mischief, Master Robert. Please tell," Nancy urged.

"Later, later; at present you would fail to appreciate the joke. In
fact, you might make it miscarry; and that wouldn't do at all. Have a
little patience. It's a good joke, and you'll be in it when the time
comes."

And nothing more could they worm out of him.

I shall be pleased to recount to you the quality of this joke, this
madcap idea. You will find it lacking neither amusement nor
denouement. Already I have put forth the casual observation that from
Paris to the third-precinct police-station in Washington is several
thousand miles.




V

THE PLOT THICKENS


At dinner that night I met my hero face to face for the first time
in eight years, and for all his calling me a duffer (I learned of
this only recently), he was mighty glad to see me, slapped me on the
back and threw his arm across my shoulder. And why shouldn't he have
been glad? We had been boys together, played hooky many a school-time
afternoon, gone over the same fishing grounds, plunged into the same
swimming-holes, and smoked our first cigar in the rear of my father's
barn; and it is the recollection of such things that cements all the
more strongly friendship in man and man. We recalled a thousand
episodes and escapades, the lickings we got, and the lickings others
got in our stead, the pretty school-teacher whom we swore to wed when
we grew up. Nobody else had a chance to get a word in edgewise. But
Nancy laughed aloud at times. She had been a witness to many of these
long-ago pranks.

"What! you are not going to the ball?" I asked, observing that he
wore only a dinner-coat and a pair of morocco slippers.

"No ball for me. Just as soon as you people hie forth, off comes this
b'iled shirt, and I shall probably meander around the house in my new
silk pajamas. I shall read a little from Homer--Jack, let me have
the key to that locked case; I've an idea that there must be some
robust old, merry old tales hidden there--and smoke a few pipes."

"But you are not going to leave Mrs. Warburton and your sister to
come home without escort?" I expostulated.

"Where the deuce are you two men going?" Robert asked, surprised.
Somehow, I seemed to catch a joyful rather than a sorrowful note in
his tones.

"An important conference at midnight, and heaven only knows how long
it may last," said Jack. "I wish you would go along, Bob."

"He can't go now, anyhow," said the pretty little wife. "He has got
to stay now, whether he will or no. William will see to it that we
women get home all right,"--and she busied herself with the salad
dishes.

Suddenly I caught Robert's eye, and we stared hard at each other.

"Chuck, you old pirate," he said presently, "what do you mean by
coming around and making love to my sister, and getting her to
promise to marry you? You know you aren't good enough for her."

I confess to no small embarrassment. "I--I know it!"

"What do you mean by it, then?"

"Why--er--that is--Confound you, Bob, _I_ couldn't help it, and
besides, I didn't _want_ to help it! And if you want to have it
out--"

"Oh, pshaw! You know just as well as I do that it is against the law
to hit a man that wears glasses. We'll call it quits if you'll
promise that in the days to come you'll let me hang around your
hymeneal shack once in a while."

"Why, if you put it that way!"--and we were laughing and shaking
hands again across the table, much to the relief of all concerned.

Dear Nan! I'm not afraid to let the whole world see how much I love
you. For where exists man's strength if not in the pride of his love?

"What time does the kid get to sleep?" asked Robert.

"He ought to be asleep now," said Mrs. W. "We shall not reach the
embassy until after ten. We have a reception first, and we must leave
cards there. Won't you be lonesome here, Bobby?"

"Not the least in the world;"--and Bobby began to laugh.

"What's the joke?" I asked.

He looked at me sharply, then shook his head. "I'll tell you all
about it to-morrow, Chuck. It's the kind of joke that has to boil a
long time before it gets tender enough to serve."

"I'd give a good deal to know what is going on behind those eyes of
yours, Bob." Nancy's eyes searched him ruthlessly, but she might just
as well have tried to pierce a stone wall. "You have been laughing
all day about something, and I'd like to know what about. It's
mischief. I haven't known you all these years for nothing. Now, don't
do anything silly, Bob."

"Nancy,"--reproachfully--"I am a man almost thirty; I have passed the
Rubicon of cutting up tricks. Go to the ball, you beauty, dance and
revel to your heart's content; your brother Robert will manage to
pass away the evening. Don't forget the key to that private case,
Jack,"--as the women left the table to put the finishing touches to
their toilets.

"Here you are," said Jack. "But mind, you must put those books back
just as you found them, and lock the case. They are rare editions."

"With the accent on the _rare_, no doubt."

"I am a student, pure and simple," said Jack, lowering his eyes.

"I wouldn't swear to those adjectives," returned the scalawag. "If I
remember, you had the reputation of being a high-jinks man in your
class at Princeton."

"Sh! Don't you dare to drag forth any of those fool corpses of
college, or out you go, bag and baggage." Jack glanced nervously
around the room and toward the hall.

"My dear fellow, your wife wouldn't believe me, no matter what I said
against your character. Isn't that right, Chuck? Jack, you are a
lucky dog, if there ever was one. A handsome wife who loves you, a
kid, a fine home, and plenty of horses. I wonder if you married her
for her money?"

Jack's eyes narrowed. He seemed to muse. "Yes, I believe I can do it
as easily as I did fifteen years ago."

"Do what?" I asked.

"Wallop that kid brother of mine. Bob, I hope you'll fall desperately
in love some day, and that you will have a devil of a time winning
the girl. You need something to stir up your vitals. By George! and I
hope she won't have a cent of money."

"Lovable brother, that!" Bob knocked the ash from his cigar and
essayed at laughter which wasn't particularly felicitous. "Supposing
I was in love, new, and that the girl had heaps of money, and all
that?"

"_And all that_," mimicked the elder brother. "What does 'and
all that' mean?"

"Oh, shut up!"

"Well, I hope you _are_ in love. It serves you right. You've
made more than one girl's heart ache, you good-looking ruffian!"

Then we switched over to politics, and Robert became an interested
listener. Quarter of an hour later the women returned, and certainly
they made a picture which was most satisfactory to the masculine eye.
Ah, thou eager-fingered Time, that shall, in days to come, wither the
roses in my beauty's cheeks, dim the fire in my beauty's eyes, draw
my beauty's bow-lips inward, tarnish the golden hair, and gnarl the
slender, shapely fingers, little shall I heed you in your passing if
you but leave the heart untouched!

Bob jumped to his feet and kissed them both, a thing I lacked the
courage to do. How pleased they looked! How a woman loves flattery
from those she loves!

Well, William is in front with the carriage; the women are putting on
their cloaks, and I am admiring the luxurious crimson fur-lined
garment which brother Robert had sent to Nancy from Paris. You will
see by this that he was not altogether a thoughtless lad. Good-by,
Mr. Robert; I leave you and your guiding-star to bolt the established
orbit; for after this night the world will never be the same
careless, happy-go-lucky world. The farce has its tragedy, and what
tragedy is free of the ludificatory? Youth must run its course, even
as the gay, wild brook must riot on its way to join the sober river.

I dare say that we hadn't been gone twenty minutes before Robert
stole out to the stables, only to return immediately with a bundle
under his arm and a white felt hat perched rakishly on his head. He
was chuckling audibly to himself.

"It will frighten the girls half to death. A gray horse and a bay;
oh, I won't make any mistake. Let me see; I'll start about twelve
o'clock. That'll get me on the spot just as the boys leave. This is
the richest yet. I'll wager that there will be some tall screaming."
He continued chuckling as he helped himself to his brother's
perfectos and fine old Scotch. I don't know what book he found in the
private case; some old rascal's merry tales, no doubt; for my hero's
face was never in repose.

We had left Mrs. Secretary-of-the-Interior's and were entering the
red brick mansion on Connecticut Avenue. Carriages lined both sides
of the street, and mounted police patrolled up and down.

"I do hope Bob will not wake up the baby," said Mrs. W.

"Probably he won't even take the trouble to look at him," replied
Jack; "not if he gets into that private case of mine."

"I can't understand what you men see in those horrid chronicles,"
Nancy declared.

"My dear girl," said Jack, "in those days there were no historians;
they were simply story-tellers, and we get our history from these
tales. The tales themselves are not very lofty, I am willing to
admit; but they give us a general idea of the times in which the
characters lived. This is called literature by the wise critics."

"Critics!" said I; "humph! Criticism is always a lazy man's job. When
no two critics think alike, of what use is criticism?"

"Ah, yes; I forgot. That book of essays you wrote got several sound
drubbings. Nevertheless," continued Jack, "what you offer is in the
main true. Time alone is the true critic. Let him put his mark of
approval on your work, and not all the critical words can bury it or
hinder its light. But Time does not pass his opinion till long after
one is dead. The first waltz, dearest, if you think you can stand it.
You mustn't get tired, little mother."

"I am wonderfully strong to-night," said the little mother. "How
beautifully it is arranged!"

"What?" we men asked, looking over the rooms.

"The figures on Mrs. Secretary-of-State's gown. The lace is
beautiful. Your brother. Nan, has very good taste for a man. That
cloak of yours is by far the handsomest thing I have seen to-night;
and that bit of scarf he sent me isn't to be matched."

"Poor boy!" sighed Nancy. "I wonder if he'll be lonely. It's a shame
to leave him home the very first night."

"Why didn't he come, then?" Mrs. W. shrugged her polished shoulders.

"Oh, my cigars and Scotch are fairly comforting," put in Jack,
complacently. "Besides, Jane Isn't at all bad looking,"--winking at
me. "What do you say, Charlie?"

But Charlie had no time to answer. The gray-haired, gray-whiskered
ambassador was bowing pleasantly to us. A dozen notable military and
naval attaches nodded; and we passed on to the ball-room, where the
orchestra was playing _A Summer Night in Munich_. In a moment
Jack and his wife were lost in the maze of gleaming shoulders and
white linen. It was a picture such as few men, once having witnessed
it, can forget. Here were the great men in the great world: this man
was an old rear-admiral, destined to become the nation's hero soon;
there, a famous general, of long and splendid service; celebrated
statesmen, diplomats, financiers; a noted English duke; a scion of
the Hapsburg family; an intimate of the German kaiser; a swart Jap; a
Chinaman with his peacock feather; tens of men whose lightest word
was listened to by the four ends of the world; representatives of all
the great kingdoms and states. The President and his handsome wife
had just left as we came, so we missed that formality, which detracts
from the pleasures of the ball-room.

"Who is that handsome young fellow over there, standing at the side
of the Russian ambassador's wife?" asked Nancy, pressing my arm.

"Where? Oh, he's Count Karloff (or something which sounds like it), a
wealthy Russian, in some way connected with the Russian government; a
diplomat and a capital fellow, they say. I have never met him. ...
Hello! there's a stunning girl right next to him that I haven't seen
before. ... Where are you going?"

Nancy had dropped my arm and was gliding kitty-corner fashion, across
the floor. Presently she and the stunning girl had saluted each other
after the impulsive fashion of American girls, and were playing cat-
in-the-cradle, to the amusement of those foreigners nearest. A nod,
and I was threading my way to Nancy's side.

"Isn't it glorious?" she began. "This is Miss Annesley, Charlie;
Betty, Mr. Henderson." Miss Annesley looked mildly curious at Nan,
who suddenly flushed. "We are to be married in the spring," she
explained shyly; and I dare say that there was a diffident expression
on my own face.

Miss Annesley gave me her hand, smiling. "You are a very fortunate
man, Mr. Henderson."

"Not the shadow of a doubt!" Miss Annesley, I frankly admitted on the
spot, was, next to Nancy, the handsomest girl I ever saw; and as I
thought of Mr. Robert in his den at home, I sincerely pitied him. I
was willing to advance the statement that had he known, a pair of
crutches would not have kept him away from No. 1300 Connecticut
Avenue.

I found three chairs, and we sat down. There was, for me, very little
opportunity to talk. Women always have so much to say to each other,
even when they haven't seen each other within twenty-four hours. From
time to time Miss Annesley glanced at me, and I am positive that
Nancy was extolling my charms. It was rather embarrassing, and I was
balling my gloves up in a most dreadful fashion. As they seldom
addressed a word to me, I soon became absorbed in the passing scene.
I was presently aroused, however.

"Mr. Henderson, Count Karloff," Miss Annesley was saying. (Karloff is
a name of my own choosing. I haven't the remotest idea if it means
anything in the Russian language. I hope not.)

"Charmed!" The count's r's were very pleasantly rolled. I could see
by the way his gaze roved from Miss Annesley to Nancy that he was
puzzled to decide which came the nearer to his ideal of womanhood.

I found him a most engaging fellow, surprisingly well-informed on
American topics. I credit myself with being a fairly good reader of
faces, and, reading his as he bent it in Miss Annesley's direction, I
began to worry about Mr. Robert's course of true love. Here was a man
who possessed a title, was handsome, rich, and of assured social
position: it would take an extraordinary American girl to look coldly
upon his attentions. By and by the two left us, Miss Annesley
promising to call on Nancy.

"And where are you staying, Betty?"

"Father and I have taken Senator Blank's house in Chevy Chase for the
winter. My horses are already in the stables. Do you ride?"

"I do."

"Then we shall have some great times together."

"Be sure to call. I want you to meet my brother."

"I believe I have," replied Miss Annesley.

"I mean my younger brother, a lieutenant in the Army."

"Oh, then you have two brothers?"

"Yes," said Nancy.

"The dance is dying, Mademoiselle," said the count in French.

"Your arm, Monsieur. _Au revoir,_ Nancy."

"Poor Bobby!" Nancy folded her hands and sighed mournfully. "It
appears to me that his love affair is not going to run very smooth.
But isn't she just beautiful, Charlie? What color, what style!"

"She's a stunner, I'm forced to admit. Bob'll never stand a ghost of
a show against that Russian. He's a great social catch, and is backed
by many kopecks."

"How unfortunate we did not know that she would be here! Bobby would
have met her at his best, and his best is more to my liking than the
count's. He has a way about him that the women like. He's no laggard.
But money ought not to count with Betty. She is worth at least a
quarter of a million. Her mother left all her property to her, and
her father acts only as trustee. Senator Blank's house rents for
eight thousand the season. It's ready furnished, you know, and one of
the handsomest homes in Washington. Besides, I do not trust those
foreigners,"--taking a remarkably abrupt curve, as it were.

[Illustration: "What were you doing off your own box?" "Getting on
the wrong box"--Act I.]

"There's two Bs in your bonnet, Nancy," I laughed.

"Never mind the Bs; let us have the last of this waltz."

This is not my own true story; so I shall bow off and permit my hero
to follow the course of true love, which is about as rough-going a
thoroughfare as the many roads of life have to offer.




VI

THE MAN ON THE BOX


At eleven-thirty he locked up his book and took to his room the
mysterious bundle which he had purloined from the stables. It
contained the complete livery of a groom. The clothes fitted rather
snugly, especially across the shoulders. He stood before the pier-
glass, and a complacent (not to say roguish) smile flitted across his
face. The black half-boots, the white doeskin breeches, the brown
brass-buttoned frock, and the white hat with the brown cockade. ...
Well, my word for it, he was the handsomest jehu Washington ever
turned out. With a grin he touched his hat to the reflection in the
glass, and burst out laughing. His face was as smooth as a baby's,
for he had generously sacrificed his beard.

I can hear him saying to himself: "Lord, but this is a lark! I'll
have to take another Scotch to screw up the edge of my nerve. Won't
the boys laugh when they hear how I stirred the girls' frizzes! We'll
have a little party here when they all get home. It's a good joke."

Mr. Robert did not prove much of a prophet. Many days were to pass
ere he reentered his brother's house.

He stole quietly from the place. He hadn't proceeded more than a
block when he became aware of the fact that he hadn't a penny in his
clothes. This discovery disquieted him, and he half turned about to
go back. He couldn't go back. He had no key.

"Pshaw! I won't need any money;"--and he started off again toward
Connecticut Avenue. He dared not hail a car, and he would not have
dared had he possessed the fare. Some one might recognize him. He
walked briskly for ten minutes. The humor of the escapade appealed to
him greatly, and he had all he could do to smother the frequent
bursts of laughter which surged to his lips. He reached absently for
his cigar-case. No money, no cigars.

"That's bad. Without a cigar I'm likely to get nervous. Scraping off
that beard made me forgetful. Jove! with these fleshings I feel as
self-conscious as an untried chorus girl. These togs can't be very
warm in winter. Ha! that must be the embassy where all those lights
are; carriages. _Allons!_"

To make positive, he stopped a pedestrian.

"Pardon me, sir," he said, touching his hat, "but will you be so kind
as to inform me if yonder is the British embassy?"

"It is, my man," replied the gentleman.

"Thank you, sir."

And each passed on to his affairs.

"Now for William; we must find William, or the joke will be on
Robert."

He manoeuvered his way through the congested thoroughfare, searching
the faces of the grooms and footmen. He dodged hither and thither,
and was once brought to a halt by the mounted police.

"Here, you! What d'ye mean by runnin' around like this? Lost yer
carriage, hey? I've a mind to run ye in. Y' know th' rules relatin'
th' leavin' of yer box in times like these. Been takin' a sly nip,
probably, an' they've sent yer hack down a peg. Get a gait on y',
now."

Warburton laughed silently as he made for the sidewalk. The first man
he plumped into was William--a very much worried William, too. Robert
could have fallen on his neck for joy. All was plain sailing now.

"I'm very glad to see you, sir," said William. "I was afraid you
could not get them clothes on, sir. I was getting a trifle worried,
too. Here's the carriage number."

Warburton glanced hastily at it and stuffed it into a convenient
pocket.

"It's sixteen carriages up, sir; a bay and a gray. You can't miss
them. The bay, being a saddle-horse, is a bit restive in the harness;
but all you have to do is to touch him with the whip. And don't try
to push ahead of your turn, or you will get into trouble with the
police. They are very strict. And don't let them confuse you, sir.
The numbers won't be in rotation. You'll hear one hundred and
fifteen, and the next moment thirty-five, like as not. It's all
according as to how the guests are leaving. Good luck to you, sir,
and don't forget to explain it all thoroughly to Mr. Warburton, sir."

"Don't you worry, William; we'll come out of this with colors
flying."

"Very well, sir. I shall hang around till you are safely off,"--and
William disappeared.

Warburton could occasionally hear the faint strains of music. From
time to time the carriage-caller bawled out a number, and the
carriage would roll up under the porte-cochere. Warburton concluded
that it would be a good plan to hunt up his rig. His search did not
last long. The bay and the gray stood only a little way from the
gate. The box was vacant, and he climbed up and gathered the reins.
He sat there for some time, longing intensely for a cigar, a good
cigar, such as gentlemen smoked.

"Seventeen!" came hoarsely along on the wings of the night. "Number
seventeen, and lively there!"

Warburton's pulse doubled its beat. His number!

"Skt!" The gray and the bay started forward, took the half-circle and
stopped under the porte-cochere. Warburton recollected that a
fashionable groom never turned his head unless spoken to; so he
leveled his gaze at his horses' ears and waited. But from the very
corner of his eye he caught the glimpse of two women, one of whom was
enveloped in a crimson cloak. He thrilled with exultation. What a
joke it was! He felt the carriage list as the women stepped in. The
door slammed to, and the rare good joke was on the way.

"Off with you!" cried the pompous footman, with an imperious wave of
the hand. "Number ninety-nine!"

"Ninety-nine! Ninety-nine!" bawled the carriage man.

Our jehu turned into the avenue, holding a tolerable rein. He clucked
and lightly touched the horses with the lash. _This_ was true
sport; _this_ was humor, genuine, initiative, unforced. He could
imagine the girls and their fright when he finally slowed down,
opened the door, and kissed them both. Wouldn't they let out a yell,
though? His plan was to drive furiously for half a dozen blocks,
zigzag from one side of the street to the other, taking the corners
sharply, and then make for Scott Circle.

Now, a lad of six can tell the difference between seventeen and
seventy-one. But this astonishing jehu of mine had been conspicuous
as the worst mathematician and the best soldier in his class at West
Point. No more did he remember that he was not in the wild West, and
that here in the East there were laws prohibiting reckless driving.

He drove decently enough till he struck Dupont Circle. From here he
turned into New Hampshire, thinking it to be Rhode Island. Mistake
number two. He had studied the city map, but he was conscious of not
knowing it as well as he should have known it; but, true to his
nature, he trusted to luck.

Aside from all this, he forgot that a woman might appreciate this
joke only when she heard it recounted. To live through it was
altogether a different matter. In an episode like this, a woman's
imagination, given the darkness such as usually fills a carriage at
night, becomes a round of terrors. Every moment is freighted with
death or disfigurement. Her nerves are like the taut strings of a
harp in a wintry wind, ready to snap at any moment; and then,
hysteria. With man the play, and only the play, is the thing.

Snap-crack! The surprised horses, sensitive and quick-tempered as all
highly organized beings are, nearly leaped out of the harness. Never
before had their flanks received a more unwarranted stroke of the
lash. They reared and plunged, and broke into a mad gallop, which was
exactly what the rascal on the box desired. An expert horseman, he
gauged the strength of the animals the moment they bolted, and he
knew that they were his. Once the rubber-tired vehicle slid sidewise
on the wet asphalt, and he heard a stifled scream.

He laughed, and let forth a sounding "whoop," which nowise allayed
the fright of the women inside the carriage. He wheeled into S
Street, scraping the curb as he did so. Pedestrians stopped and
stared after him. A policeman waved his club helplessly, even
hopelessly. On, on: to Warburton's mind this ride was as wild as that
which the Bishop of Vannes took from Belle-Isle to Paris in the
useless effort to save Fouquet from the wrath of Louis XIV, and to
anticipate the pregnant discoveries of one D'Artagnan. The screams
were renewed. A hand beat against the forward window and a muffled
but wrathful voice called forth a command to stop. This voice was
immediately drowned by another's prolonged scream. Our jehu began to
find all this very interesting, very exciting.

"I'll wager a dollar that Nan isn't doing that screaming. The
Warburtons never cry out when they are frightened. Hang it!"--
suddenly; "this street doesn't look familiar. I ought to have reached
Scott Circle by this time. Ah! here's a broader street,"--going
lickety-clip into Vermont.

A glass went jingling to the pavement.

"Oho! Nancy will be jumping out the next thing. This will never do."
He began to draw in.

Hark! His trained trooper's ear heard other hoofs beating on the
iron-like surface of the pavement. Worriedly he turned his head. Five
blocks away there flashed under one of the arc-lights, only to
disappear in the shadow again, two mounted policemen.

"By George! it looks as if the girls were going to have their fun,
too!" He laughed, but there was a nervous catch in his voice. He
hadn't counted on any policeman taking part in the comedy. "Where the
devil _is_ Scott Circle, anyhow?"--fretfully. He tugged at the
reins. "Best draw up at the next corner. I'll be hanged if _I_
know where I am."

He braced himself, sawed with the reins, and presently the frightened
and somewhat wearied horses slowed down into a trot. This he finally
brought to a walk. One more pull, and they came to a stand. It would
be hard to say which breathed the heaviest, the man or the horses.
Warburton leaped from the box, opened the door and waited. He
recognized the necessity of finishing the play before the mounted
police arrived on the scene.

There was a commotion inside the carriage, then a woman in a crimson
cloak stepped (no, jumped!) out. Mr. Robert threw his arms around her
and kissed her cheek.

"You ... vile ... wretch!"

Warburton sprang back, his hands applied to his stinging face.

"You drunken wretch, how dare you!"

"Nan, it's only I--" he stammered.

"Nan!" exclaimed the young woman, as her companion joined her. The
light from the corner disclosed the speaker's wrathful features,
disdainful lips, palpitating nostrils, eyes darting terrible glances.
"Nan! Do you think, ruffian, that you are driving serving-maids?"

"Good Lord!" Warburton stepped back still farther; stepped back
speechless, benumbed, terror-struck. The woman he was gazing at was
anybody in the world but his sister Nancy!




VII

A POLICE AFFAIR


"Officers, arrest this fellow!" commanded the young woman. Her
gesture was Didoesque in its wrath.

"That we will, ma'am!" cried one of the policemen, flinging himself
from his horse. "So it's you, me gay buck? Thirty days fer you, an'
mebbe more. I didn't like yer looks from th' start. You're working
some kind of a trick. What complaint, ma'am?"

"Drunkenness and abduction,"--rubbing the burning spot on her cheek.

"That'll be rather serious. Ye'll have to appear against him in th'
mornin', ma'am."

"I certainly shall do so." She promptly gave her name, address and
telephone number.

"Bill, you drive th' ladies home an' I'll see this bucko to th'
station. Here, you!"--to Warburton, who was still dumb with
astonishment at the extraordinary denouement to his innocent joke.
"Git on that horse, an' lively, too, or I'll rap ye with th' club."

"It's all a mistake, officer--"

"Close yer face an' git on that horse. Y' can tell th' judge all that
in th' mornin'. _I_ ain't got no time t' listen. Bill, report
just as soon as ye see th' ladies home. Now, off with ye. Th'
ladies'll be wantin' somethin' t' quiet their nerves. Git on that
horse, me frisky groom; hustle!" Warburton mechanically climbed into
the saddle. It never occurred to him to parley, to say that he
couldn't ride a horse. The inventive cells of his usually fertile
brain lay passive. "Now," went on the officer, mounting his own nag,
"will ye go quietly? If ye don't I'll plug ye in th' leg with a chunk
o' lead. I won't stan' no nonsense."

"What are you going to do with me?" asked Warburton, with a desperate
effort to collect his energies.

"Lock ye up; mebbe throw a pail of water on that overheated cocoanut
of yours."

"But if you'll only let me explain to you! It's all a joke; I got the
wrong carriage--"

"Marines, marines! D' ye think I was born yestiddy? Ye wanted th'
ladies' sparklers, or I'm a doughhead." The police are the same all
over the world; the original idea sticks to them, and truth in voice
or presence is but sign of deeper cunning and villainy. "Anyhow, ye
can't run around Washington like ye do in England, me cockney. Ye
can't drive more'n a hundred miles an hour on these pavements."

"But, I tell you--" Warburton, realizing where his escapade was about
to lead him, grew desperate. The ignominy of it! He would be the
laughing-stock of all the town on the morrow. The papers would teem
with it. "You'll find that you are making a great mistake. If you
will only take me to--Scott Circle--"

"Where ye have a pal with a gun, eh? Git ahead!" And the two made off
toward the west.

Once or twice the officer found himself admiring the easy seat of his
prisoner; and if the horse had been anything but a trained animal, he
would have worried some regarding the ultimate arrival at the third-
precinct.

Half a dozen times Warburton was of a mind to make a bolt for it, but
he did not dare trust the horse or his knowledge of the streets. He
had already two counts against him, disorderly conduct and abduction,
and he had no desire to add uselessly a third, that of resisting an
officer, which seems the greatest possible crime a man can commit and
escape hanging. Oh, for a mettlesome nag! There would be no police-
station for him, then. Police-station! Heavens, what should he do?
His brother, his sister; their dismay, their shame; not counting that
he himself would be laughed at from one end of the continent to the
other. What an ass he had made of himself! He wondered how much money
it would take to clear himself, and at the same moment recollected
that he hadn't a cent in his clothes. A sweat of terror moistened his
brow.

"What were ye up to, anyway?" asked the policeman. "What kind of
booze have ye been samplin'?"

"I've nothing to say."

"Ye speak clear enough. So much th' worse, if ye ain't drunk. Was ye
crazy t' ride like that? Ye might have killed th' women an' had a
bill of manslaughter brought against ye."

"I have nothing to say; it is all a mistake. I got the wrong number
and the wrong carriage."

"Th' devil ye did! An' where was ye goin' t' drive th' other carriage
at that thunderin' rate? It won't wash. His honor'll be stone-deaf
when ye tell him that. You're drunk, or have been."

"Not to-night."

"Well, I'd give me night off t' know what ye were up to. Don't ye
know nothin' about ordinances an' laws? An' I wouldn't mind havin' ye
tell me why ye threw yer arms around th' lady an' kissed her,"--
shrewdly.

Warburton started in his saddle. He had forgotten all about that part
of the episode. His blood warmed suddenly and his cheeks burned. He
had kissed her, kissed her soundly, too, the most radiantly beautiful
woman in all the world. Why, come to think of it, it was easily worth
a night in jail. Yes, by George, he _had_ kissed her, kissed
that blooming cheek, and but for this policeman, would have
forgotten! Whatever happened to him, she wouldn't forget in a hurry.
He laughed. The policeman gazed at him in pained surprise.

"Well, ye seem t' take it good an' hearty."

"If you could only see the humor in it, my friend, you'd laugh, too."

"Oh, I would, hey? All I got t' say is that yer nerve gits me. An' ye
stand a pretty good show of bein' rounded up for more'n thirty days,
too. Well, ye've had yer joke; mebbe ye have th' price t' pay th'
fiddler. Turn here."

The rest of the ride was in silence, Warburton gazing callously ahead
and the officer watching him with a wary eye to observe any
suggestive movement. He couldn't make out this chap. There was
something wrong, some deep-dyed villainy--of this he hadn't the
slightest doubt. It was them high-toned swells that was the craftiest
an' most daring. Handsome is that handsome does. A quarter of an hour
later they arrived at the third precinct, where our jehu was
registered for the night under the name of James Osborne. He was
hustled into a small cell and left to himself.

He had kissed her! Glory of glories! He had pressed her to his very
heart, besides. After all, they couldn't do anything very serious to
him. They could not prove the charge of abduction. He stretched
himself on the cot, smiled, arranged his legs comfortably, wondered
what she was thinking of at this moment, and fell asleep. It was a
sign of a good constitution and a decently white conscience. And thus
they found him in the morning. They touched his arm, and he awoke
with a smile, the truest indication of a man's amiability. At first
he was puzzled as he looked blinkingly from his jailers to his
surroundings and then back at his jailers. Then it all returned to
him, and he laughed. Now the law, as represented and upheld by its
petty officers, possesses a dignity that is instantly ruffled by the
sound of laughter from a prisoner; and Mr. Robert was roughly told to
shut up, and that he'd soon laugh on the other side of his mouth.

"All right, officers, all right; only make allowances for a man who
sees the funny side of things." Warburton stood up and shook himself,
and picked up his white hat. They eyed him intelligently. In the
morning light the young fellow didn't appear to be such a rascal. It
was plainly evident that he had _not_ been drunk the preceding
night; for his eyes were not shot with red veins nor did his lips
lack their usual healthy moisture. The officer who had taken him in
charge, being a shrewd and trained observer, noted the white hands,
soft and well-kept. He shook his head.

"Look here, me lad, you're no groom, not by several years. Now, what
th' devil was ye up to, anyway?"

"I'm not saying a word, sir," smiled Warburton. "All I want to know
is, am I to have any breakfast? I shouldn't mind some peaches and
cream or grapes to start with, and a small steak and coffee."

"Ye wouldn't mind, hey?" mimicked the officer. "What d'ye think this
place is, th' Metropolitan Club? Ye'll have yer bacon an' coffee, an'
be glad t' git it. They'll feed ye in th' mess-room. Come along."

Warburton took his time over the coffee and bacon. He wanted to think
out a reasonable defense without unmasking himself. He was thinking
how he could get word to me, too. The "duffer" might prove a friend
in need.

"Now where?" asked Warburton, wiping his mouth.

"T' th' court. It'll go hard with ye if ye're handed over t' th'
grand jury on th' charge of abduction. Ye'd better make a clean
breast of it. I'll speak a word for yer behavior."

"Aren't you a little curious?"

"It's a part of me business,"--gruffly.

"I'll have my say to the judge," said Warburton.

"That's yer own affair. Come."

Once outside, Warburton lost color and a large part of his
nonchalance; for an open patrol stood at the curb.

"Have I got to ride in that?"--disgustedly.

"As true as life; an' if ye make any disturbance, so much th' worse."

Warburton climbed in, his face red with shame and anger. He tied his
handkerchief around his chin and tilted his hat far down over his
eyes.

"'Fraid of meetin' some of yer swell friends, hey? Ten t' one, yer a
swell an' was runnin' away with th' wrong woman. Mind, I have an eye
on ye."

The patrol rumbled over the asphalt on the way down-town. Warburton
buried his face in his hands. Several times they passed a cigar-
store, and his mouth watered for a good cigar, the taste of a clear
Havana.

He entered the police-court, not lacking in curiosity. It was his
first experience with this arm of the civil law. He wasn't sure that
he liked it. It wasn't an inviting place with its bare benches and
its motley, tawdry throng. He was plumped into a seat between some
ladies of irregular habits, and the stale odor of intoxicants,
mingling with cheap perfumery, took away the edge of his curiosity.

"Hello, pretty boy; jag?" asked one of these faded beauties, in an
undertone. She nudged him with her elbow.

"No, sweetheart," he replied, smiling in spite of himself.

"Ah gowan! Been pinching some one's wad?"

"Nope!"

"What are you here for, then?"

"Having a good time without anybody's consent. If you will listen,
you will soon hear all about it."

"Silence there, on the bench!" bawled the clerk, whacking the desk.

"Say, Marie," whispered the woman to her nearest neighbor, "here's a
boy been selling his master's harness and got pinched."

"But look at the sweet things coming in, will you! Ain't they swell,
though?" whispered Marie, nodding a skinny feather toward the door.

Warburton glanced indifferently in the direction indicated, and
received a shock. Two women--and both wore very heavy black veils.
The smaller of the two inclined her body, and he was sure that her
scrutiny was for him. He saw her say something into the ear of the
companion, and repeat it to one of the court lawyers. The lawyer
approached the desk, and in his turn whispered a few words into the
judge's ear. The magistrate nodded. Warburton was conscious of a
blush of shame. This was a nice position for any respectable woman to
see him in!

"James Osborne!" called the clerk.

An officer beckoned to James, and he made his way to the prisoner's
box. His honor looked him over coldly.

"Name?"

"James Osborne."

"Born here?"

"No."

"Say 'sir'."

"No, sir."

"Where were you born?"

"In New York State."

"How old are you? And don't forget to say 'sir' when you reply to my
questions."

"I am twenty-eight, sir."

"Married?"

"No, sir."

"How long have you been engaged as a groom?"

"Not very long, sir."

"How long?"

"Less than twenty-four hours, sir."

Surprise rippled over the faces of the audience on the benches.

"Humph! You are charged with disorderly conduct, reckless driving,
and attempted abduction. The last charge has been withdrawn,
fortunately for you, sir. Have you ever been up before?"

"Up, sir?"

"A prisoner in a police-court."

"No, sir."

"Twenty-five for reckless driving and ten for disorderly conduct; or
thirty days."

"Your Honor, the horses ran away."

"Yes, urged by your whip."

"I was not disorderly, sir."

"The officer declares that you had been drinking."

"Your Honor, I got the wrong carriage. My number was seventeen and I
answered to number seventy-one." He wondered if _she_ would
believe this statement.

"I suppose that fully explains why you made a race-track of one of
our main thoroughfares?"--sarcastically. "You were on the wrong
carriage to begin with."

"All I can say, sir, is that it was a mistake."

"The mistake came in when you left your carriage to get a drink. You
broke the law right then. Well, if a man makes mistakes, he must pay
for them, here or elsewhere. This mistake will cost you thirty-five."

"I haven't a penny in my clothes, sir."

"Officer, lock him up, and keep him locked up till the fine is paid.
I can not see my way to remit it Not another word,"--as Warburton
started to protest.

"Marie Johnson, Mabel Tynner, Belle Lisle!" cried the clerk.

The two veiled ladies left the court precipitately.

James, having been ushered into a cell, hurriedly called for pen and
ink and paper. At half after ten that morning the following note
reached me:

"Dear Chuck: Am in a devil of a scrape at the police-court. Tried to
play a joke on the girls last night by dressing up in the groom's
clothes. Got the wrong outfit, and was arrested. Bring thirty-five
and a suit of clothes the quickest ever. And, for mercy's sake, say
nothing to any one, least of all the folks. I have given the name
of James Osborne. Now, hustle. Bob."

I hustled.




VIII

ANOTHER SALAD IDEA


When they found him missing, his bed untouched, his hat and coat on
the rack, his inseparable walking-stick in the umbrella-stand, they
were mightily worried. They questioned Jane, but she knew nothing.
Jack went out to the stables; no news there. William, having driven
the girls home himself, dared say nothing. Then Jack wisely
telephoned for me, and I hurried over to the house.

"Maybe he hunted up some friends last night," I suggested.

"But here's his hat!" cried Nancy.

"Oh, he's all right; don't worry. I'll take a tour around the city.
I'll find him. He may be at one of the clubs."

Fortunately for Mr. James Osborne I returned home first, and there
found his note awaiting me. I was at the court by noon, armed with
thirty-five and a suit of clothes of my own. I found the clerk.

"A young man, dressed as a groom, and locked up overnight," I said
cautiously. "I wish to pay his fine."

"James Osborne?"

"Yes, that's the name; James Osborne,"--reaching down into my pocket.

"Fine's just been paid. We were about to release him. Here, officer,
show this gentleman to James Osborne's cell, and tell him to pack up
and get out."

So his fine was paid! Found the money in his clothes, doubtless. On
the way to the cells I wondered what the deuce the rascal had been
doing to get locked up overnight. I was vastly angry, but at the
sight of him all my anger melted into a prolonged shout of laughter.

"That's right; laugh, you old pirate! I wish you had been in my boots
a few hours ago. Lord!"

I laughed again.

"Have you got that thirty-five?" he asked.

"Why, your fine has been paid," I replied, rather surprised.

"And didn't you pay it?"

"Not I! The clerk told me that it had just been paid."

Warburton's jaw sank limply. "Just been paid?--Who the deuce could
have paid it, or known?"

"First, tell me what you've been up to."

He told me snatches of the exploit as he changed his clothes, and it
was a question which of us laughed the more. But he didn't say a word
about the stolen kiss, for which I think none the less of him.

"Who were the women?" I asked.

He looked at me for a space, as if deciding. Finally he made a
negative sign.

"Don't know who they were, eh?"--incredulously.

He shrugged, laughed, and drew on his shoes.

"I always knew that I was the jackass of the family, Chuck, but I
never expected to do it so well. Let's get out of this hole. I wonder
who can have paid that fine?... No, that would not be possible!"

"What would not be?"

"Nothing, nothing,"--laughing.

But I could see that his spirits had gone up several degrees.

"The whole thing is likely to be in the evening papers," I said. He
needed a little worrying. And I knew his horror of publicity.

"The newspapers? In the newspapers? Oh, I say, Chuck, can't you use
your influence to suppress the thing? Think of the girls."

"I'll do the best I can. And there's only one thing for you to do,
and that is to cut out of town till your beard has grown. It would
serve you right, however, if the reporters got the true facts."

"I'm for getting out of town, Chuck; and on the next train but one."

Here our conversation was interrupted by the entrance of a policeman.

"A note for _Mister_ Osborne,"--ironically. He tossed the letter
to Warburton and withdrew.

_Mister_ Osborne eagerly tore open an end of the envelope--a
very aristocratic envelope, as I could readily discern--and extracted
the letter. I closely watched his facial expressions. First, there
was interest, then surprise, to be succeeded by amusement and a
certain exultation. He slapped his thigh.

"By George, Chuck. I'll do it!"

"Do it? Now what?"

"Listen to this." He cleared his throat, sniffed of the faintly
scented paper and cleared his throat again. He looked up at me
drolly.

"Well?" said I, impatiently. I was as eager to hear it as he had been
to read it. I believed that the mystery was about to be solved.

"'James Osborne, Sir: I have been thinking the matter over seriously,
and have come to the conclusion that there may have been a mistake.
Undoubtedly my groom was primarily to blame. I have discharged him
for neglecting his post of duty. I distinctly recall the manner in
which you handled the horses last night. It may be possible that they
ran away with you. However that may be, I find myself in need of a
groom. Your horsemanship saved us from a serious accident. If you
will promise to let whisky alone, besides bringing me a
recommendation, and are without engagement, call at the inclosed
address this afternoon at three o'clock. I should be willing to pay
as much as forty dollars a month. You would be expected to accompany
me on my morning rides.'"

"She must have paid the fine," said I. "Well, it beats anything I
ever heard of. Had you arrested, and now wants to employ you! What
name did you say?" I asked carelessly.

"I didn't say any name, Chuck,"--smiling. "And I'm not going to give
any, you old duffer."

"And why not?"

"For the one and simple reason that I am going to accept the
position,"--with a coolness that staggered me.

"What?" I bawled.

"Sure as life, as the policeman said last night."

"You silly ass, you! Do you want to make the family a laughing-stock
all over town?" I was really angry.

"Neither the family nor the town will know anything about it,"--
imperturbably.

"But you will be recognized!" I remonstrated. "It's a clear case of
insanity, after what has just happened to you."

"I promise not to drink any whisky,"--soberly.

"Bob, you are fooling me."

"Not the littlest bit, Chuck. I've worn a beard for two years. No one
would recognize me. Besides, being a groom, no one would pay any
particular attention to me. Get the point?"

"But what under the sun is your object?" I demanded. "There's
something back of all this. It's not a simple lark like last
night's."

"Perspicacious man!"--railingly. "Possibly you may be right. Chuck,
you know that I've just got to be doing something. I've been inactive
too long. I am ashamed to say that I should tire of the house in a
week or less. Change, change, of air, of place, of occupation;
change--I must have it. It's food and drink."

"You've met this woman before, somewhere."

"I neither acknowledge nor deny. It will be very novel. I shall be
busy from morning till night. Think of the fun of meeting persons
whom you know, but who do not know you. I wouldn't give up this
chance for any amount of money."

"Forty Dollars a month," said I, wrathfully.

"Cigar money,"--tranquilly.

"Look here, Bob; be reasonable. You can't go about as a groom in
Washington. If the newspapers ever get hold of it, you would be
disgraced. They wouldn't take you as a clerk in a third-rate
consulate. Supposing you should run into Jack or his wife or Nancy;
do you think they wouldn't know you at once?"

"I'll take the risk. I'd deny that I knew them; they'd tumble and
leave me alone. Chuck, I've got to do this. Some day you'll
understand."

"But the woman's name, Bob; only her name."

"Oh, yes! And have you slide around and show me up within twenty-four
hours. No, I thank you. I am determined on this. You ought to know me
by this time. I never back down; it isn't in the blood. And when all
is said, where's the harm in this escapade? I can see none. It may
not last the day through."

"I trust not,"--savagely.

"I am determined upon answering this letter in person and finding
out, if possible, what induced her to pay my fine. Jackass or not,
I'm going to see the thing through." Then he stretched an appealing
hand out toward me, and said wheedlingly: "Chuck, give me your word
to keep perfectly quiet. I'll drop you a line once in a while, just
to let you know how I stand. I shall be at the house to-night. I'll
find an excuse. I'm to go up North on a hunting expedition; a hurry
call. Do you catch on?"

"I shall never be able to look Nancy in the face," I declared. "Come,
Bob; forget it. It sounds merry enough, but my word for it, you'll
regret it inside of twenty-four hours. You are a graduate of the
proudest military school in the world, and you are going to make a
groom of yourself!"

"I've already done that and been locked up overnight. You are wasting
your breath, Chuck."

"Well, hang you for a jackass, sure enough! I promise; but if you get
into any such scrape as this, you needn't send for me. I refuse to
help you again."

"I can't exactly see that you did. Let's get out. Got a cigar in your
pocket? I am positively dying for a smoke."

Suddenly a brilliant idea came to me.

"Did you know that Miss Annesley, the girl you saw on shipboard, is
in Washington and was at the embassy last night?"

"No! You don't say!" He was too clever for me. "When I get through
with this exploit, Nancy'll have to introduce me. Did you see her?"

"Yes, and talked to her. You see what you missed by not going last
night."

"Yes, I missed a good night's rest and a cold bath in the morning."

"Where shall I say you were last night?" I asked presently.

Mister James scratched his chin disconcertedly. "I hadn't thought of
that. Say that I met some of the boys and got mixed up in a little
game of poker."

"You left your hat on the rack and your cane in the stand. You are
supposed to have left the house without any hat."

"Hat!" He jumped up from the cot on which he had been sitting and
picked up the groom's tile. "Didn't you bring me a hat?"--dismayed.

"You said nothing about it,"--and I roared with laughter.

"How shall I get out of here? I can't wear this thing through the
streets."

"I've a mind to make you wear it. And, by Jove, you shall! You'll
wear it to the hatter's, or stay here. That's final. I never back
down, either."

"I'll wear it; only, mark me, I'll get even with you. I always did."

"_I_ am not a boy any longer,"--with an inflection on the
personal pronoun. "Well, to continue about that excuse. You left the
house without a hat, and you met the boys and played poker all night.
That hitches wonderfully. You didn't feel well enough to go to the
embassy, but you could go and play poker. That sounds as if you cared
a lot for your sister. And you wanted to stay at home the first
night, because you had almost forgotten how the inside of a private
dwelling looked. Very good; very coherent."

"Cut it, Chuck. What the deuce excuse _can_ I give?"--worriedly
lighting the cigar I had given him.

"My boy, I'm not making up your excuses; you'll have to invent those.
I'll be silent, but I refuse to lie to Nancy on your account. Poker
is the only excuse that would carry any weight with it. You will have
to let them believe you're a heartless wretch; which you are, if you
persist in this idiotic exploit."

"You don't understand, Chuck. I wish I could tell you; honestly, I
do. The girls will have to think mean things of me till the farce is
over. I couldn't escape if I wanted to."

"Is it Miss Annesley, Bob? Was it she whom you ran away with? Come,
make a clean breast of it. If it's she, why, that altogether alters
the face of things."

He walked the length of the cell and returned. "I give up. You've hit
it. You understand now. I simply can't back away; I couldn't if I
tried."

"Are you in love with the girl?"

"That's just what I want to find out, Chuck. I'm not sure. I've been
thinking of her night and day. I never had any affair; I don't know
what love is. But if it's shaking in your boots at the sound of her
name, if it's getting red in the face when you only just think of
her, if it's having a wild desire to pick her up and run away with
her when you see her, then I've got it. When she stepped out of that
confounded carriage last night, you could have knocked me over with a
paper-wad. Come, let's go out. Hang the hat! Let them all laugh if
they will. It's only a couple of blocks to the hatter's."

He bravely put the white hat on his head, and together we marched out
of the police-office into the street. We entered the nearest hatter's
together. He took what they call a drop-kick out of the hat, sending
it far to the rear of the establishment. I purchased a suitable derby
for him, gave him ten dollars for emergencies, and we parted.

He proceeded to a telegraph office and sent a despatch to a friend up
North, asking him to telegraph him to come at once, taking his
chances of getting a reply. After this he boarded a north-going car,
and was rolled out to Chevy Chase. He had no difficulty in finding
the house of which he was in search. It was a fine example of
colonial architecture, well back from the road, and fields beyond it.
It was of red brick and white stone, with a wide veranda supported by
great white pillars. There was a modern portico at one side. A fine
lawn surrounded the whole, and white-pebble walks wound in and out.
All around were thickly wooded hills, gashed here and there by the
familiar yet peculiar red clay of the country. Warburton walked up
the driveway and knocked deliberately at the servants' door, which
was presently opened. (I learned all these things afterward, which
accounts for my accurate knowledge of events.)

"Please inform Miss Annesley that Mr. Osborne has come in reply to
her letter," he said to the little black-eyed French maid.

"Ees Meestaire Osborrrrne zee new groom?"

"Yes."

"I go thees minute!" _Hein!_ what a fine-looking young man to
make eyes at on cold nights in the kitchen!

Warburton sat down and twirled his hat. Several times he repressed
the desire to laugh. He gazed curiously about him. From where he sat
he could see into the kitchen. The French chef was hanging up his
polished pans in a glistening row back of the range, and he was
humming a little _chanson_ which Warburton had often heard in
the restaurants of the provincial cities of France. He even found
himself catching up the refrain where the chef left off. Presently he
heard footsteps sounding on the hardwood floor, which announced that
the maid was returning with her mistress.

He stood up, rested first on one foot, then on the other, and
awkwardly shifted his new hat from one hand to the other, then
suddenly put the hat under his arm, recollecting that the label was
not such as servants wore inside their hats.

There was something disquieting in those magnetic sapphire eyes
looking so serenely into his.




IX

THE HEROINE HIRES A GROOM


Remarkable as it may read, his first impression was of her gown--a
gown such as women wear on those afternoons when they are free of
social obligations, a gown to walk in or to lounge in. The skirt,
which barely reached to the top of her low shoes, was of some blue
stuff (stuff, because to a man's mind the word covers feminine dress-
goods generally, liberally, and handily), overshot with gray. Above
this she had put on a white golfing-sweater, a garment which at that
time was just beginning to find vogue among women who loved the
fields and the road. Only men who own to stylish sisters appreciate
these things, and Warburton possessed rather observant eyes. She held
a bunch of freshly plucked poppies in her hand. It was the second
time that their glances had met and held. In the previous episode (on
the day she had leaned out of the cab) hers had been first to fall.
Now it was his turn. He studied the tips of his shoes. There were
three causes why he lowered his eyes: First, she was mistress here
and he was an applicant for employment; second, he loved her; third,
he was committing the first bold dishonesty in his life. Once, it was
on the very tip of his tongue to confess everything, apologize, and
take himself off. But his curiosity was of greater weight than his
desire. He remained silent and waited for her to speak.

"Celeste, you may leave us," said Miss Annesley.

Celeste courtesied, shot a killing glance at the tentative groom, and
departed the scene.

"You have driven horses for some length of time?" the girl began.

If only he might look as calmly and fearlessly at her! What a voice,
now that he heard it in its normal tone! "Yes, Madam; I have ridden
and driven something like ten years."

"Where?"

"In the West, mostly."

"You are English?"

"No, Madam." He wondered how much she had heard at the police-court
that morning. "I am American born."

"Are you addicted to the use of intoxicants?"--mentally noting the
clearness of the whites of his eyes.

The barest flicker of a smile stirred his lips.

"No, Madam. I had not been drinking last night--that is, not in the
sense the officers declared I had. It is true that I take a drink
once in a while, when I have been riding or driving all day, or when
I am cold. I have absolutely no appetite."

She brushed her cheeks with the poppies, and for a brief second the
flowers threw a most beautiful color over her face and neck.

"What was your object in climbing on the box of my carriage and
running away with it?"

Quick as a flash of light he conceived his answer. "Madam, it was a
jest between me and some maids." He had almost said serving-maids,
but the thought of Nancy checked this libel.

"Between you and some maids?"--faintly contemptuous. "Explain, for I
believe an explanation is due me."

His gaze was forced to rove again. "Well, Madam, it is truly
embarrassing. Two maids were to enter a carriage and I was to drive
them away from the embassy, and once I had them in the carriage I
thought it would be an admirable chance to play them a trick."

"Pray, since when have serving-maids beein allowed exit from the main
hall of the British embassy?"

Mr. Robert was positive that the shadow of a sarcastic smile rested
for a moment on her lips. But it was instantly hidden under the
poppies.

"That is something of which I have no intimate knowledge. A groom is
not supposed to turn his head when on the box unless spoken to. You
will readily understand that, Madam. I made a mistake in the number.
Mine was seventy-one, and I answered number seventeen. I was
confused."

"I dare say. Seventy-one," she mused, "It will be easy to verify
this, to find out whose carriage that was."

Mr. Robert recognized his mistake, but he saw no way to rectify it.
She stood silently gazing over his shoulder, into the fields beyond.

"Perhaps you can explain to me that remarkable episode at the
carriage door? I should be pleased to hear your explanation."

It hard come,--the very thing he had dreaded had come. He had hoped
that she would ignore it. "Madam, I can see that you have sent for me
out of curiosity only. If I offered any disrespect to you last night,
I pray you to forgive me. For, on my word of honor, it was innocently
done." He bowed, and even placed his hand on the knob of the door.

"Have a little patience. I prefer myself to forget that disagreeable
incident." The truth is, "on my word of honor," coming from a groom,
sounded strange in her ears; and she wanted to learn more about this
fellow. "Mr. Osborne, what were you before you became a groom?"

"I have not always been a groom, it is true, Madam. My past I prefer
to leave in obscurity. There is nothing in that past, however, of
which I need be ashamed;"--and unconsciously his figure became more
erect.

"Is your name Osborne?"

"No, Madam, it is not. For my family's sake, I have tried to forget
my own name." (I'll wager the rascal never felt a qualm in the region
of his conscience.)

It was this truth which was not truth that won his battle.

"You were doubtless discharged last night?"

"I did not return to ascertain, Madam. I merely sent for my
belongings."

"You have recommendations?"--presently.

"I have no recommendations whatever, Madam. If you employ me, it must
be done on your own responsibility and trust in human nature. I can
only say, Madam, that I am honest, that I am willing, that I possess
a thorough knowledge of horse-flesh."

"It is very unusual," she said, searching him to the very heart with
her deep blue eyes. "For all I know you may be the greatest rascal,
or you may be the honestest man, in the world." His smile was so
frank and engaging that she was forced to smile herself. But she
thought of something, and frowned. "If you have told me the truth, so
much the better; for I can easily verify all you have told me. I will
give you a week's trial. After all,"--indifferently--"what I desire
is a capable servant. You will have to put up with a good deal. There
are days when I am not at all amiable, and on those days I do not
like to find a speck of rust on the metals or a blanket that has not
been thoroughly brushed. As for the animals, they must always shine
like satin. This last is unconditional. Besides all this, our force
of servants is small. Do you know anything about serving?"

"Very little." What was coming now?

"The chef will coach you. I entertain some, and there will be times
when you will be called upon to wait on the table. Come with me and I
will show you the horses. We have only five, but my father takes
great pride in them. They are all thoroughbreds."

"Like their mistress," was Warburton's mental supplementary.

"Father hasn't ridden for years, however. The groom I discharged this
morning was capable enough on the box, but he was worse than useless
to me in my morning rides. I ride from nine till eleven, even Sundays
sometimes. Remain here till I return."

As she disappeared Warburton drew in an exceedingly long breath and
released it slowly. Heavens, what an ordeal! He drew the back of his
hand across his forehead and found it moist. Not a word about the
fine: he must broach it and thank her. Ah, to ride with her every
morning, to adjust her stirrup, to obey every command to which she
might give voice, to feel her small boot repulse his palm as she
mounted! Heaven could hold nothing greater than this. And how easily
a woman may be imposed upon! Decidedly, Mr. Robert was violently in
love.

When she returned there was a sunbonnet on her head, and she had
pinned the poppies on her breast. (Why? I couldn't tell you, unless
when all is said and done, be he king or valet, a man is always a
man; and if perchance he is blessed with good looks, a little more
than a man. You will understand that in this instance I am trying to
view things through a woman's eyes.) With a nod she bade him precede
her, and they went out toward the stables. She noted the flat back,
the square shoulders, the easy, graceful swing of the legs.

"Have you been a soldier?" she asked suddenly.

He wheeled. His astonishment could not be disguised quickly enough to
escape her vigilant eyes. Once more he had recourse to the truth.

"Yes, Madam. It was as a trooper that I learned horsemanship."

"What regiment?"

"I prefer not to say,"--quietly.

"I do not like mysteries,"--briefly.

"Madam, you have only to dismiss me, to permit me to thank you for
paying my fine and to reimburse you at the earliest opportunity."

She closed her lips tightly. No one but herself knew what had been on
the verge of passing across them.

"Let us proceed to the stables," was all she said. "If you prove
yourself a capable horseman, that is all I desire."

The stable-boy slid back the door, and the two entered. Warburton
glanced quickly about; all was neatness. There was light and
ventilation, too, and the box-stalls were roomy. The girl stopped
before a handsome bay mare, which whinnied when it saw her. She laid
her cheek against the animal's nose and talked that soft jargon so
embarrassing to man and so intelligible to babies and pet animals.
Lucky horse! he thought; but his face expressed nothing.

"This is Jane, my own horse, and there are few living things I love
so well. Remember this. She is a thoroughbred, a first-class hunter;
and I have done more than five feet on her at home."

She moved on, Warburton following soberly and thoughtfully. There was
a good deal to think of just now. The more he saw of this girl, the
less he understood her purpose in hiring him. She couldn't possibly
know anything about him, who or what he was. With his beard gone he
defied her to recognize in him the man who had traveled across the
Atlantic with her. A highbred woman, such as she was, would scarcely
harbor any kind feelings toward a man who had acted as he was acting.
If any man had kissed Nancy the way he had kissed her, he would have
broken every bone in his body or hired some one to do it. And she had
paid his fine at the police-station and had hired him on probation!
Truly he was in the woods, and there wasn't a sign of a blazed trail.
(It will be seen that my hero hadn't had much experience with women.
She knew nothing of him whatever. She was simply curious, and brave
enough to attempt to have this curiosity gratified. Of course, I do
not venture to say that, had he been coarse in appearance, she would
have had anything to do with him.)

"This is Dick, my father's horse,"--nodding toward a sorrel, large
and well set-up. "He will be your mount. The animal in the next stall
is Pirate."

Pirate was the handsomest black gelding Warburton had ever laid eyes
on.

"What a beauty!" he exclaimed enthusiastically, forgetting that
grooms should be utterly without enthusiasm. He reached out his hand
to pat the black nose, when a warning cry restrained him. Pirate's
ears lay flat.

"Take care! He is a bad-tempered animal. No one rides him, and we
keep him only to exhibit at the shows. Only half a dozen men have
ridden him with any success. He won't take a curb in his mouth, and
he always runs away. It takes a very strong man to hold him in. I
really don't believe that he's vicious, only terribly mischievous,
like a bullying boy."

"I should like to ride him."

The girl looked at her new groom in a manner which expressed frank
astonishment. Was he in earnest, or was it mere bravado? An idea came
to her, a mischievous idea.

"If you can sit on Pirate's back for ten minutes, there will not be
any question of probation. I promise to engage you on the spot,
recommendation or no recommendation." Would he, back down?

"Where are the saddles, Madam?" he asked calmly, though his blood
moved faster.

"On the pegs behind you,"--becoming interested. "Do you really intend
to ride him?"

"With your permission."

"I warn you that the risk you are running is great."

"I am not afraid of Pirate, Madam," in a tone which implied that he
was not afraid of any horse living. The spirit of antagonism rose up
in him, that spirit of antagonism of the human against the animal,
that eternal ambition of the one to master the other. And besides,
I'm not sure that James didn't want to show off before the girl--
another very human trait in mankind. For my part, I wouldn't give
yesterday's rose for a man who wouldn't show off once in a while,
when his best girl is around and looking on.

"On your head be it, then,"--a sudden nervousness seizing her. Yet
she was as eager to witness the encounter as he was to court it.
"William!" she called. The stable-boy entered, setting aside his
broom. "This is James, the new groom. Help him to saddle Pirate."

"Saddle Pirate, Miss Annesley!" cried the boy, his mouth open and his
eyes wide.

"You see?" said the girl to Warburton.

"Take down that saddle with the hooded stirrups," said Warburton,
briefly. He would ride Pirate now, even if Pirate had been sired in
Beelzebub's stables. He carefully inspected the saddle, the stirrup-
straps and the girth. "Very good, indeed. Buckles on saddles are
always a hidden menace and a constant danger. Now, bring out Pirate,
William."

William brought out the horse, who snorted when he saw the saddle on
the floor and the curb on Warburton's arm.

"There hasn't been anybody on his back for a year, sir; not since
last winter. He's likely to give you trouble," said the boy. "You
can't put that curb on him, sir; he won't stand for it a moment. Miss
Annesley, hadn't you better step outside? He may start to kicking.
That heavy English snaffle is the best thing I know of. Try that,
sir. And don't let him get his head down, or he'll do you. Whoa!" as
Pirate suddenly took it into his head to leave the barn without any
one's permission.

The girl sprang lightly into one of the empty stalls and waited. She
was greatly excited, and the color in her cheeks was not borrowed
from the poppies. She saw the new groom take Pirate by the forelock,
and, quicker than words can tell, Mr. Pirate was angrily champing the
cold bit. He reared. Warburton caught him by the nose and the neck.
Pirate came down, trembling with rage.

"Here, boy; catch him here," cried Warburton. William knew his
business, and he grasped the bridle close under Pirate's jaws.
"That's it. Now hold him."

Warburton picked up the saddle and threw it over Pirate's glossy
back. Pirate waltzed from side to side, and shook his head wickedly.
But the man that was to mount him knew all these signs. Swiftly he
gathered up the end of the belly-band strap and ran it through the
iron ring. In and out he threaded it, drawing it tighter and tighter.
He leaped into the saddle and adjusted the stirrups, then dismounted.

"I'll take him now, William," said James, smiling.

"All right, sir," said William, glad enough to be relieved of all
further responsibility.

James led Pirate into the small court and waited for Miss Annesley,
who appeared in the doorway presently.

"James, I regret that I urged you to ride him. You will be hurt," she
said. Her worry was plainly visible on her face.

James smiled his pleasantest and touched his hat.

"Very well, then; I have warned you. If he bolts, head him for a
tree. That's the only way to stop him."

James shortened the bridle-rein to the required length, took a firm
grip on Pirate's mane, and vaulted into the saddle. Pirate stood
perfectly still. He shook his head. James talked to him and patted
his sleek neck, and touched him gently with his heel. Then things
livened up a bit. Pirate waltzed, reared, plunged, and started to do
the _pas seul_ on the flower-beds. Then he immediately changed
his mind. He decided to re-enter the stables.

"Don't let him get his head down!" yelled William, nimbly jumping
over a bed of poppies and taking his position beside his mistress.

"The gates, William! The gates!" cried the girl, excitedly. "Only one
is open. He will not be able to get through."

William scampered down the driveway and swung back the iron barrier.
None too soon! Like a black shadow, Pirate flashed by, his rider's
new derby rolling in the dust.

The girl stood in the doorway, her hands pressed against her heart.
She was as white as the clouds that sailed overhead.




X

PIRATE


On the opposite side of the road there was a stone wall about five
feet in height; beyond this was a broad, rolling field, and farther
on, a barb-wire fence and a boggy stream which oozed its way down
toward the Potomac. Far away across the valley the wooded hills were
drying and withering and thinning, with splashes of yellow and red. A
flock of birds speckled the fleecy October clouds, and a mild breeze
sent the grasses shivering.

Toward the wall Pirate directed his course. Warburton threw back his
full weight. The effort had little or no effect on Pirate's mouth.
His rider remembered about the tree, but the nearest was many yards
away. Over the wall they went, and down the field. Pirate tried to
get his head down, but he received a check. Score one for the man.
Warburton, his legs stiffened in the stirrups, his hands well down,
his breath coming in gasps, wondered where they would finally land.
He began to use his knees, and Pirate felt the pressure. He didn't
like it at all. Oddly enough, Warburton's leg did not bother him as
he expected it would, and this gave him confidence. On, on; the dull
pounding of Pirate's feet, the flying sod, the wind in his face: and
when he saw the barb-wire fence, fear entered into him. An inch too
low, a stumble, and serious injuries might result. He must break
Pirate's gait.

He began to saw cow-boy fashion. Pirate grew very indignant: he was
being hurt. His speed slackened none, however; he was determined to
make that fence if it was the last thing he ever did. He'd like to
see any man stop him. He took the deadly fence as with the wings of a
bird. But he found that the man was still on his back. He couldn't
understand it. He grew worried. And then he struck the red-brown muck
bordering the stream. The muck flew, but at every bound Pirate sank
deeper, and the knees of his rider were beginning to tell. Warburton,
full of rage, yet not unreasonable rage, quickly saw his chance. Once
more he threw back his weight; this time to the left. Pirate's head
came stubbornly around; his gait was broken, he was floundering in
the stream. Now Warburton used his heels savagely. He shortened the
reins and whacked Mr. Pirate soundly across the ears. Pirate plunged
and reared and, after devious evolutions, reached solid ground. This
time his head was high in the air, and, try as he would, he could not
lower his neck a solitary inch.

[Illustration: "He's a newspaper man and makes his living by telling
lies."--ACT II.]

Warburton knew that the animal could not make the barb-wire fence
again, so he waltzed him along till he found a break in the wire.
Over this Pirate bounded, snorting. But he had met a master. Whether
he reared or plunged, waltzed or ran, he could not make those
ruthless knees relent in their pressure. He began to understand what
all beasts understand, sooner or later--the inevitable mastery of
man. There was blood in his nostrils. A hand touched his neck
caressingly. He shook his head; he refused to conciliate. A voice,
kindly but rather breathless, addressed him. Again Pirate shook his
head; but he did not run, he cantered. Warburton gave a sigh of
relief. Over the field they went. A pull to the left, and Pirate
wheeled; a pull to the right, and again Pirate answered, and cantered
in a circle. But he still shook his head discontentedly, and the
froth that spattered Warburton's legs was flecked with blood. The
stirrup-strap began to press sharply and hurtfully against
Warburton's injured leg. He tugged, and Pirate fell into a trot. He
was mastered.

After this Warburton did as he pleased; Pirate had learned his
lesson. His master put him through a dozen manoeuvers, and he was
vastly satisfied with the victory. In the heat of the battle
Warburton had forgotten all about where and what he was; and it was
only when he discerned far away a sunbonnet with fluttering strings
peering over the stone wall, and a boy in leggings standing on top of
the wall, that he recollected. A wave of exhilaration swept through
his veins. He had conquered the horse before the eyes of the one
woman.

He guided Pirate close to the wall, and stopped him, looked down into
the girl's wonder-lit eyes and smiled cheerfully. And what is more,
she smiled faintly in acknowledgment. He had gained, in the guise of
a groom, what he might never have gained in any other condition of
life, the girl's respect and admiration. Though a thorough woman of
the world, high-bred, wellborn, she forgot for the moment to control
her features; and as I have remarked elsewhere, Warburton was a
shrewd observer.

"Bully, Mr. Osborne!" shouted William, leaping down. "It was simply
great!"

"There are some bars farther down," said the girl, quietly. "William,
run and open them."

Warburton flushed slightly. He could not tell how she had
accomplished it, whether it was the tone or the gesture, but she had
calmly reestablished the barrier between mistress and servant.

"I think I'll put him to the wall again," said the hero, seized by a
rebel spirit.

He wheeled Pirate about and sent him back at a run. Pirate balked.
Round he went again, down the field and back. This time he cleared
the wall with a good foot to spare. The victory was complete.

When it was all over, and Pirate was impatiently munching an extra
supply of oats, the girl bade Mr. James to report early the following
morning.

"I hope I shall please you, Madam."

"Address me as Miss Annesley from now on," she said; and nodding
shortly, she entered the house.

To Warburton, half the pleasure of the victory was gone; for not a
word of praise had she given him. Yet, she had answered his smile.
Well, he had made a lackey out of himself; he had no right to expect
anything but forty dollars a month and orders.

He broke his word with me. He did not return to the house that night
for dinner. In fact, he deliberately sent for his things, explaining
that he was called North and wouldn't have time to see them before he
left. It took all my persuasive oratory to smooth the troubled
waters, and then there were areas upon which my oil had no effect
whatever.

"He is perfectly heartless!" cried Nancy. "He couldn't go to the
embassy, but he could steal away and play poker all night with a lot
of idling Army officers. And now he is going off to Canada without
even seeing us to say good-by. Charlie, there is something back of
all this."

"I'll bet it's a woman," said Jack, throwing a scrutinizing glance at
me. But I was something of a diplomat myself, and he didn't catch me
napping. "Here's a telegram for him, too."

"I think I'll take the liberty of opening it," said I. I knew its
contents. It was the reply Warburton had depended on. I read it
aloud. It is good to have friends of this sort. No question was
asked. It was a bald order: "Come up at once and shoot caribou. Take
first train."

"Bob's a jackass," was Jack's commentary. I had heard something like
it before, that day. "He'll turn up all right;"--and Jack lit a cigar
and picked up his paper.

"And Betty Annesley is going to call to-morrow night," said Nancy,
her voice overflowing with reproach. Her eyes even sparkled with
tears. "I did so want them to meet."

I called myself a villain. But I had given my promise; and I was in
love myself.

"I don't see what we can do. When Bob makes up his mind to do
anything, he generally does it." Jack, believing he had demolished
the subject, opened his _Morning Post_ and fell to studying the
latest phases of the Venezuelan muddle.

Nancy began to cry softly; she loved the scalawag as only sisters
know how to love. And I became possessed with two desires; to console
her and to punch Mr. Robert's head.

"It has always been this way with him," Nancy went on, dabbing her
eyes with her two-by-four handkerchief. "We never dreamed that he was
going into the Army till he came home one night and announced that he
had successfully passed his examinations for West Point. He goes and
gets shot, and we never know anything about it till we read the
papers. Next, he resigns and goes abroad without a word or coming to
see us. I don't know what to make of Bobby; I really don't."

I took her hand in mine and kissed it, and told her the rascal would
turn up in due time, that they hadn't heard the last of him for that
winter.

"He's only thoughtless and single-purposed," interposed Jack.

"Single-purposed!" I echoed.

"Why, yes. He gets one thing at a time in his brain, and thinks of
nothing else till that idea is worn out. I know him."

I recalled my useless persuasion of the morning. "I believe you are
right."

"Of course I'm right," replied Jack, turning a page of his paper. "Do
_you_ know where he has gone?"

"I think the telegram explains everything,"--evasively.

"Humph! Don't you worry about him, Nan. I'll wager he's up to some of
his old-time deviltry."

These and other little observations Jack let fall made it plain to me
that he was a natural student of men and their impulses, and that his
insight and judgment, unerring and anticipatory, had put him where he
is to-day, at the head of a department.

I left the house about ten o'clock, went downtown and found the
prodigal at a cheap hotel on Pennsylvania. He was looking over some
boots and leggings and ready-made riding breeches.

"Aha, Chuck, so here you are!"

"Look here, Bob, this will never do at all," I began.

"I thought we had threshed all that out thoroughly this morning."

"I left Nancy crying over your blamed callousness."

"Nancy? Hang it, I don't want Nancy to waste any tears over me; I'm
not worth it."

"Precious little you care! If it wasn't for the fact that you have
told me the true state of things, I should have exposed you to-night.
Why didn't you turn up to dinner as you promised? You might at least
have gone through the pretense of saying good-by to them."

"My dear boy, I'll admit that my conduct is nefarious. But look;
Nancy knows Miss Annesley, and they will be calling on each other.
The truth is, I dare not let the girls see me without a beard. And
I'm too far gone into the thing to back out now."

"I honestly hope that some one recognizes you and gives you away," I
declared indignantly.

"Thanks. You're in love with Nancy, aren't you? To be sure. Well,
wouldn't you do anything to keep around where she is, to serve her,
to hear her voice, to touch her hand occasionally, to ride with her;
in fact, always to be within the magic circle of her presence? Well,
I love this girl; I know it now, it is positive, doubtless. Her
presence is as necessary to me as the air I breathe. Had I met her in
the conventional way, she would have looked upon me as one of the
pillars of convention, and mildly ignored me. As I am, she does not
know what I am, or who I am; I am a mystery, I represent a secret,
and she desires to find out what this secret is. Besides all this,
something impels me to act this part, something aside from love. It
is inexplicable; fate, maybe." He paused, went to the window, and
looked down into the street. It was after-theater time and carriages
were rolling to and fro.

"Bob, I apologize. You know a great deal more about feminine nature
than I had given you credit for. But how can you win her this way?"

He raised his shoulders. "Time and chance."

"Well, whate'er betide, I can't help wishing you luck."

We shook hands silently, and then I left him.

"Father," said Betty Annesley at the dinnertable that same night, "I
have engaged a new groom. He rode Pirate to-day and thoroughly
mastered him."

"Pirate? You don't say! Well, I'm glad of that. Pirate will make a
capital saddle-horse if he is ridden often enough. The groom will be
a safe companion for you on your rides. Are you too tired to do some
drawing for me to-night?"

"The fortification plans?"

"Yes." His eyes wandered from her face to the night outside. How gray
and sad the world was! "You will always love your father, dearie?"

"Love him? Always!"

"Whatever betide, for weal or woe?"

"Whatever betide."

How easy it was for her to say these words!

"And yet, some day, you must leave me, to take up your abode in some
other man's heart. My only wish is that it may beat for you as truly
as mine does."

She did not reply, but stepped to the window and pressed her brow to
the chilled pane. A yellow and purple line marked the path of the
vanished sun; the million stars sparkled above; far away she could
see the lights of the city. Of what was she thinking, dreaming? Was
she dreaming of heroes such as we poets and novelists invent and hang
upon the puppet-beam? Ah, the pity of these dreams the young girl
has! She dreams of heroes and of god-like men, and of the one that is
to come. But, ah! he never comes, he never comes; and the dream fades
and dies, and the world becomes real. A man may find his ideal, but a
woman, never. To youth, the fields of love; to man, the battle-
ground; to old age, a chair in the sunshine and the wreck of dreams!

"The government ought to pay you well if those plans are successful."
She moved away from the window.

"Yes, the government ought to pay me well. I should like to make you
rich, dearie, and happy."

"Why, daddy, am I not both? I have more money than I know what to do
with, and I am happy in having the kindest father." She came around
the table and caressed him, cheek to cheek. "Money isn't everything.
It just makes me happy to do anything for you."

His arm grew tense around her waist.

"Do you know what was running through my mind at the embassy last
night? I was thinking how deeply I love this great wide country of
mine. As I looked at the ambassador and his aides, I was saying to
myself, 'You dare not!' It may have been silly, but I couldn't help
it, We are the greatest people in the world. When I compared foreign
soldiers with our own, how my heart and pride swelled! No
formalities, no race prejudice, no false pride. I was never
introduced to a foreign officer that I did not fear him, with his
weak eyes, his affected mannerisms, his studied rudeness, not to me,
but to the country I represented. How I made some of them dance! Not
for vanity's sake; rather the inborn patriotism of my race. I had
only to think of my father, his honorable scars, his contempt for
little things, his courage, his steadfastness, his love for his
country, which has so honored him with its trust. Oh! I am a patriot;
and I shall never, never marry a man whose love for his country does
not equal my own." She caught up her father's mutilated hand and
kissed it. "And even now this father of mine is planning and planning
to safeguard his country."

"But you must not say anything to a soul, my child; it must be a
secret till all is ready. I met Karloff to-day at the club. He has
promised to dine with us to-morrow night."

"Make him postpone it. I have promised to dine with Nancy Warburton."

"You had better dine with us and spend the evening with your friend.
Do you not think him a handsome fellow?"

"He is charming." She touched the bowl of poppies with her fingers
and smiled.

"He is very wealthy, too."

Betty offered no comment.

"What did they do to that infernal rascal who attempted to run away
with you and Mrs. Chadwick?"

"They arrested him and locked him up."

"I hope they will keep him there. And what reason did he give the
police for attempting to run away with you?"

"He said that he had made a wager with some serving-maids to drive
them from the embassy. He claims to have got the wrong number and the
wrong carriage."

"A very likely story!"

"Yes, a very likely story!"--and Betty, still smiling, passed on into
the music-room, where she took her violin from its case and played
some rollicking measures from Offenbach.

At the same time her father rose and went out on the lawn, where he
walked up and down, with a long, quick, nervous stride. From time to
time a wailing note from the violin floated out to him, and he would
stop and raise his haggard face toward heaven. His face was no longer
masked in smiles; it was grief-stricken, self-abhorring. At length he
softly crossed the lawn and stood before the music-room window. Ah,
no fretting care sat on yonder exquisite face, nor pain, nor trouble;
youth, only youth and some pleasant thought which the music had
aroused. How like her mother! How like her mother!

Suddenly he smote himself on the brow with a clenched hand. "Wretch!
God-forsaken wretch, how have you kept your trust? And how yonder
child has stabbed you! How innocently she has stabbed you! My
country! ... My honor! ... My courage and steadfastness! Mockery!"




XI

THE FIRST RIDE


The next morning Warburton was shown into a neat six-by-eight, just
off the carriage-room. There was a cot, running water and a wash-
stand, and a boot-blacking apparatus. For the rest, there were a few
portraits of fast horses, fighters, and toe-dancers (the adjective
qualifying all three!) which the senator's sporting groom had
collected and tacked to the walls. For appearance's sake, Mr. James
had purchased a cheap trunk. Everything inside was new, too. His
silver military brushes, his silver shaving set, and so forth and so
forth, were in charge of a safe-deposit storage company, alongside
some one's family jewels. The only incriminating things he retained
were his signet-ring and his Swiss timepiece.

"Have you had your breakfast, sir?" asked William, the stable-boy.

"Yes, my lad. Now, as Miss Annesley has forgotten it, perhaps you
will tell me of just what my duties here will consist."

"You harness, ride and drive, sir, and take care of the metals. I
clean the leathers and carriages, exercise the horses and keep their
hides shiny. If anything is purchased, sir, we shall have to depend
upon your judgment. Are you given to cussing, sir?"

"Cussing?" repeated Warburton.

"Yes, sir. Miss Annesley won't stand for it around the stables. The
man before you, sir, could cuss most beautifully; and I think that's
why he was fired. At least, it was one reason."

Warburton smoothed his twitching mouth. "Don't you worry, William;
it's against my religion to use profane language."

William winked, there was an answering wink, and the two became
friends from that moment on.

"I'll bet you didn't say a thing to Pirate yesterday, when he bolted
over the wall with you."

"Well, I believe I _did_ address a few remarks to Pirate which
would not sound well on dress-parade; but so long as it wasn't within
hearing distance, William, I suppose it doesn't matter."

"No, sir; I suppose not."

"Now, what kind of a master is the colonel?" asked Warburton,
strapping on his English leggings.

"Well, it's hard to say just now. You see, I've been with the family
ever since I was six. The colonel used to be the best fellow _I_
ever knew. Always looking out for your comfort, never an undeserved
harsh word, and always a smile when you pleased him. But he's changed
in the last two years."

"How?"

"He doesn't take any interest in the things he used to. He goes about
as if he had something on his mind; kind of absent-minded, you know;
and forgets to-morrow what he says to-day. He always puts on a good
face, though, when Miss Betty is around."

"Ah. What night do I have off?"--of a mind that a question like this
would sound eminently professional in William's ears.

"Sunday, possibly; it all depends on Miss Annesley, sir. In Virginia
nearly every night was ours. Here it's different." William hurriedly
pulled on his rubber boots and gloves, grabbed up the carriage
sponges, and vanished.

Warburton sat on the edge of his cot and laughed silently. All this
was very amusing. Had any man, since the beginning of time, found
himself in a like position? He doubted it. And he was to be butler
besides! It would be something to remember in his old age. Yet, once
or twice the pins of his conscience pricked him. He _wasn't_
treating Nancy just right. He didn't want her to cry over his
gracelessness; he didn't want her to think that he was heartless. But
what could he do? He stood too deeply committed.

He was puzzled about one thing, however, and, twist it as he would,
he could not solve it with any degree of satisfaction. Why, after
what had happened, had she hired him? If she could pass over that
episode at the carriage-door and forget it, _he_ couldn't. He
knew that each time he saw her the memory of that embrace and
brotherly salute would rise before his eyes and rob him of some of
his assurance--an attribute which was rather well developed in Mr.
Robert, though he was loath to admit it. If his actions were a
mystery to her, hers were none the less so to him. He made up his
mind to move guardedly in whatever he did, to practise control over
his mobile features so as to avert any shock or thoughtless sign of
interest. He knew that sooner or later the day would come when he
would be found out; but this made him not the less eager to court
that day.

He shaved himself, and was wiping his face on the towel when Celeste
appeared in the doorway. She eyed him, her head inclined roguishly to
one side, the exact attitude of a bird that has suddenly met a
curious and disturbing specimen of insect life.

"M'sieu Zhames, Mees Annesley rides thees morning. You will
pre_pairre_ yourself according,"--and she rattled on in her
absurd native tongue (every other native tongue _is_ absurd to
us, you know!)--

    "He is charming and handsome,
    With his uniform and saber;
    And his fine black eyes
    Look love as he rides by!"

while the chef in the kitchen glared furiously at his omelette
souffle, and vowed terrible things to M'sieu Zhames if he looked at
Celeste more than twice a day.

"Good morning," said M'sieu Zhames, hanging up his towel. His face
glowed as the result of the vigorous rubbing it had received.

_"Bon jour!"_--admiringly.

"Don't give me any of your _bong joors,_ Miss,"--stolidly.
"There's only one language for me, and that's English."

"_Merci!_ You Anglaises are _so_ conceit'! How you like
_me_ to teach you French, eh, M'sieu Zhames?"

"Not for me,"--shaking his head. She was very pretty, and under
ordinary circumstances . . . He did not finish the thought, but I
will for him. Under ordinary circumstances, M'sieu Zhames would have
kissed her.

"No teach you French? _Non?_ Extra_orrd_inaire!" She
tripped away, laughing, while the chef tugged at his royal and M'sieu
Zhames whistled.

"Hang the witch!" the new groom murmured. "Her mistress must be very
generous, or very positive of her own charms, to keep a sprite like
this maid about her. I wonder if I'll run into Karloff?" Karloff! The
name chilled him, somehow. What was Karloff to her? Had he known that
she was to be in Washington for the winter? What irony, if fate
should make him the groom and Karloff the bridegroom! If Karloff
loved her, he could press his suit frankly and openly. And, as
matters stood, what chance on earth had he, Warburton? "Chuck was
right; I've made a mistake, and I am beginning to regret it the very
first morning." He snapped his fingers and proceeded to the right
wing, where the horses were.

At nine o'clock he led Jane and Dick out to the porte-cochere and
waited. He had not long to loiter, for she came out at once, drawing
on her gauntlets and taking in long breaths of the morning air. She
nodded briefly, but pleasantly, and came down the steps. Her riding-
habit was of the conventional black, and her small, shapely boots
were of patent-leather. She wore no hat on her glorious head, which
showed her good sense and her scorn for freckles and sunburn. But
nature had given her one of those rare complexions upon which the sun
and the wind have but trifling effect.

"We shall ride north, James; the roads are better and freer. Jane has
a horror of cars."

"Yes, Miss Annesley,"--deferentially. "You will have to teach me the
lay of the land hereabouts, as I am rather green."

"I'll see to it that you are made perfectly familiar with the roads.
You do not know Washington very well, then?"

"No, Miss. Shall I give you a--er--boot up?" He blushed. He had
almost said "leg up".

She assented, and raised her boot, under which he placed his palm,
and sprang into the saddle. He mounted in his turn and waited.

"When we ride alone, James, I shall not object to your riding at my
side; but when I have guests, always remember to keep five yards to
the rear."

"Yes, Miss." If he could have got rid of the idea of Karloff and the
possibilities which his name suggested, all this would have appealed
to him as exceedingly funny.

"Forward, then!"--and she touched Jane's flank with her crop.

The weather was perfect for riding: no sun, a keen breeze from the
northwest, and a dust-settled road. Warburton confessed to me
afterward that this first ride with her was one of the most splendid
he had ever ridden. Both animals were perfect saddle-horses, such as
are to be found only in the South. They started up the road at a
brisk trot, and later broke into a canter which lasted fully a mile.
How beautiful she was, when at length they slowed down into a walk!
Her cheeks were flaming, her eyes dancing and full of luster, her
hair was tumbled about and tendrils fluttered down her cheeks. She
was Diana: only he hoped that she was not inclined to celibacy.

What a mistake he had made! He could never get over this gulf which
he himself had thrust between them. This was no guise in which to
meet a woman of her high breeding. Under his breath he cursed the
impulse that had urged him to decline to attend the ball at the
British embassy. There he would have met her as his own true self, a
soldier, a polished gentleman of the world, of learning and breeding.
Nancy would have brought them together, calls would have been
exchanged, and he would have defied Karloff. Then he chid himself for
the feeling he had against the Russian. Karloff had a right to love
this girl, a right which far eclipsed his own. Karloff was Karloff; a
handsome fellow, wealthy, agreeable; while James was not James,
neither was he wealthy nor at present agreeable. A man can not sigh
very well on horseback, and the long breath which left Warburton's
lips made a jerking, hissing sound.

"Have you ever ridden with women before. James?"

"Several times with my major's daughter,"--thoughtlessly.

"Your major's daughter? Who was your regimental colonel?"

James bit his lips, and under his breath disregarded William's
warning about "cussing."

"Permit me, Miss Annesley, to decline to answer."

"Did you ride as an attendant?"

"Yes; I was a trooper."

"You speak very good English for a stable-man."

"I have not always been a stable-man."

"I dare say. I should give a good deal to know what you _have_
been. Come, James, tell me what the trouble was. I have influence; I
might help you."

"I am past help;"--which was true enough, only the real significance
of his words passed over her head. "I thank you for your kindness."

If she was piqued, she made no sign. "James, were you once a
gentleman, in the sense of being well-born?"

"Miss Annesley, you would not believe me if I told you who I am and
what I have been."

"Are you a deserter?"--looking him squarely in the eye. She saw the
color as it crept under his tan.

"I have my honorable discharge,"--briefly.

"I shall ask you to let me see it. Have you ever committed a
dishonorable act? I have a right to know."

"I have committed one dishonorable act, Miss Annesley. I shall always
regret it."

She gave him a penetrating glance. "Very well; keep your secret."

And there was no more questioning on that ride; there was not even
casual talk, such as a mistress might make to her servant. There was
only the clock-clock of hoofs and the chink of bit metal. Warburton
did not know whether he was glad or sorry.

She dismounted without her groom's assistance, which somewhat
disappointed that worthy gentleman. If she was angry, to his eye
there was no visible evidence of it. As he took the bridles in hand,
she addressed him; though in doing so, she did not look at him, but
gave her attention to her gauntlets, which she pulled slowly from her
aching fingers.

"This afternoon I shall put you in the care of Pierre, the cook. I am
giving a small dinner on Monday evening, and I shall have to call on
you to serve the courses. Later I shall seek a butler, but for the
present you will have to act in that capacity."

He wasn't sure; it might have been a flash of sunlight from behind a
cloud. If it was a smile, he would have given much to know what had
caused it.

He tramped off to the stables. A butler! Well, so be it. He could
only reasonably object when she called upon him to act in the
capacity of a chambermaid. He wondered why he had no desire to laugh.




XII

A TICKLISH BUSINESS


Pierre was fierce and fat and forty, but he could cook the most
wonderful roasts and ragouts that Warburton ever tasted; and he could
take a handful of vegetables and an insignificant bone and make a
soup that would have tickled the jaded palate of a Lucullus.
Warburton presented himself at the kitchen door.

"Ah!" said Pierre, striking a dramatic pose, a ladle in one hand and
a pan in the other. "So you are zee new groom? Good! We make a butler
out of you? Bah! Do you know zee difference between a broth and a
soup? Eh?"

The new groom gravely admitted that he did.

"Hear to me!"--and Pierre struck his chest with a ladle. "I teach you
how to sairve; _I_, Pierre Flageot, will teach a hostler to be a
butler! Bah!"

"That is what I am sent here for."

"Hear to me! If zay haf oysters, zay are placed on zee table before
zee guests enter. _V'la_? Then zee soup. You sairve one deesh at
a time. You do _not_ carry all zee deeshes at once. And you take
zee deesh, _so_!"--illustrating. "Then you wait till zay push
aside zee soup deesh. Then you carry zem away. _V'la_?"

Warjburton signified that he understood.

"_I_ carve zee meats," went on the amiable Pierre. "You haf
nozzing to do wiz zee meats. You rest zee deesh on zee flat uf zee
hand, _so_! Always sairve to zee _right_ uf zee guest. Vatch
zat i zay do not move vhile you sairve. You spill zee soup, and I
keel you! To spill zee soup ees a crime. Now, take hold uf thees soup
deesh."

Warburton took it clumsily by the rim. Pierre snatched it away with a
volley of French oaths. William said that there was to be no
"cussing," but Pierre seemed to be an immune and not included in this
order.

"Idiot! Imbecile! _Non, non! Thees_ way. You would put zee thumb
in zee soup. Zare! You haf catch zat. Come to zee dining-hall. I show
you. I explain."

The new groom was compelled to put forth all his energies to keep his
face straight. If he laughed, he was lost. If only his old mates
could see him now! The fop of Troop A playing at butler! Certainly he
would have to write Chuck about it--(which he most certainly never
did). Still, the ordeal in the dining-room was a severe one. Nothing
he attempted was done satisfactorily; Pierre, having in mind
Celeste's frivolity and this man's good looks, made the task doubly
hard. He hissed "Idiot!" and "Imbecile!" and "Jackass!" as many times
as there are knives and forks and spoons at a course dinner. It was
when they came to the wines that Pierre became mollified. He was
forced to acknowledge that the new groom needed no instructions as to
the varying temperatures of clarets and burgundies. Warburton longed
to get out into the open and yell. It was very funny. He managed,
however, on third rehearsal, to acquit himself with some credit. They
returned to the kitchen again, where they found Celeste nibbling
crackers and cheese. She smiled.

"Ha!" The vowel was given a prolonged roll. "So, Mademoiselle, you
haf to come and look on, eh?"

"Is there any objection, Monsieur?" retorted Celeste in her native
tongue, making handsome eyes at Warburton, who was greatly amused.

"Ha! if he was hideous, would you be putting on those ribbons I gave
you to wear on Sundays?" snarled Pierre.

Warburton followed their French without any difficulty. It was the
French of the Parisian, with which he was fairly conversant. But his
face remained impassive and his brows only mildly curious.

"I shall throw them away, Monsieur Flageot, if you dare to talk to me
like that. He _is_ handsome, and you are jealous, and I am glad.
You behaved horribly to that coarse Nanon last Sunday. Because she
scrubs the steps of the French embassy you consider her above me,
_me!_"

"You are crazy!" roared Pierre. "You introduced me to her so that you
might make eyes at that abominable valet of the secretary!"

Celeste flounced (whatever means of locomotion that is) abruptly from
the kitchen. Pierre turned savagely to his protege.

"Go! And eef you look at her, idiot, I haf revenge myself. Oh, I am
calm! Bah! Go to zee stables, cattle!" And he rattled his pans at a
great rate.

Warburton was glad enough to escape.

"I have brought discord into the land, it would seem."

But his trials were not over. The worst ordeal was yet to come. At
five, orders were given to harness the coach-horses to the coupe and
have them at the steps promptly at eight-thirty. Miss Annesley had
signified her intention of making a call in the city. Warburton had
not the slightest suspicion of the destination. He didn't care where
it was. It would be dark and he would pass unrecognized. He gave the
order no more thought. Promptly at eight-thirty he drove up to the
steps. A moment later she issued forth, accompanied by a gentleman in
evening dress. It was too dark for Warburton to distinguish his
features.

"I am very sorry, Count, to leave you; but you understand perfectly.
It is an old school friend of mine whom I haven't seen in a long
time; one of the best girl friends I have ever known. I promised to
dine with her to-night, but I broke that promise and agreed to spend
the evening."

"Do not disturb yourself on my account," replied the man in broken
English, which was rather pleasant to the ear. "Your excellent father
and I can pass the evening very well."

Karloff! Warburton's chin sank into his collar and his hands
trembled. This man Karloff had very penetrating eyes, even in the
dark.

"But I shall miss the music which I promised myself. Ah, if you only
knew how adorable you are when you play the violin! I become lost, I
forget the world and its sordidness. I forget everything but that
mysterious voice which you alone know how to arouse from that little
box of wood. You are a great artist, and if you were before the
public, the world would go mad over you--as I have!"

So she played the violin, thought the unhappy man on the box of the
coupe.

"Count, you know that is taboo; you must not talk to me like that,"--
with a nervous glance at the groom.

"The groom embarrasses you?" The count laughed. "Well, it is only a
groom, an animal which does not understand these things."

"Besides, I do not play nearly so well as you would have me
believe,"--steering him to safer channels.

"Whatever you undertake, Mademoiselle, becomes at once an art,"--
gallantly. "Good night!"--and the count saluted her hand as he helped
her into the coupe.

How M'sieu Zhames would have liked to jump down and pommel Monsieur
le Comte! Several wicked thoughts surged through our jehu's brain,
but to execute any one of them in her presence was impossible.

"Good night, Count. I shall see you at dinner on Monday."

She would, eh? And her new butler would be on duty that same evening?
Without a doubt. M'sieu Zhames vowed under his breath that if he got
a good chance he would make the count look ridiculous. Not even a
king can retain his dignity while a stream of hot soup is trickling
down his spinal column. Warburton smiled. He was mentally acting like
a school-boy disappointed in love. His own keen sense of the humorous
came to his rescue.

"James, to the city, No.--Scott Circle, and hurry." The door closed.

Scott Circle? Warburton's spine wrinkled. Heaven help him, he was
driving Miss Annesley to his own brother's house! What the devil was
getting into fate, anyhow? He swore softly all the way to the
Connecticut Avenue extension. He made three mistakes before he struck
Sixteenth Street. Reaching Scott Circle finally, he had no difficulty
in recognizing the house. He drew up at the stepping-stone, alighted
and opened the door.

"I shall be gone perhaps an hour and a half, James. You may drive
around, but return sharply at ten-thirty." Betty ran up the steps and
rang the bell.

Our jehu did _not_ wait to see the door open, but drove away,
lickety-clip. I do not know what a mile lickety-clip is generally
made in, but I am rather certain that the civil law demands twenty-
five dollars for the same. The gods were with him this time, and no
one called him to a halt. When he had gone as far away from Scott
Circle as he dared go, his eye was attracted by a genial cigar sign.
He hailed a boy to hold the horses and went inside. He bought a dozen
cigars and lit one. He didn't even take the trouble to see if he
could get the cigars for nothing, there being a penny-in-the-slot
machine in one corner of the shop. I am sure that if he had noticed
it, it would have enticed him, for the spirit of chance was well-
grounded in him, as it is in all Army men. But he hurried out, threw
the boy a dime, and drove away. For an hour and twenty minutes he
drove and smoked and pondered. So she played the violin! played it
wonderfully, as the count had declared. He was passionately fond of
music. In London, in Paris, in Berlin, in Vienna, he had been an
untiring, unfailing patron of the opera. Some night he resolved to
listen at the window, providing the window was open. Yes, a hundred
times Chuck was right. Any other girl, and this jest might have
passed capitally; but he wanted the respect of this particular woman,
and he had carelessly closed the doors to her regard. She might
tolerate him, that would be all. She would look upon him as a
hobbledehoy.

He approached the curb again in front of the house, and gazed
wistfully at the lighted windows. Here was another great opportunity
gone. How he longed to dash into the house, confess, and have done
with it!

"I wish Chuck was in there. I wish he would come out and kick me good
and hearty."

(Chuck would have been delighted to perform the trifling service; and
he would not have gone about it with any timidity, either.)

"Hang the horses! I'm going to take a peek in at the side window,"--
and he slid cautiously from the box. He stole around the side and
stopped at one of the windows. The curtain was not wholly lowered,
and he could see into the drawing-room. There they were, all of them;
and Miss Annesley was holding the baby, which Mrs. Jack had awakened
and brought down stairs. He could see by the diffident manner in
which Jack was curling the ends of his mustache that they were
comparing the baby with him. "The conceited ass!" muttered the self-
appointed outcast; "it doesn't look any more like him than it does
like me!" Here Miss Annesley kissed the baby, and Warburton hoped
that they hadn't washed its face since he performed the same act.

Mrs. Jack disappeared with the hope of the family, and Nancy got out
a bundle of photographs. M'sieu Zhames would have given almost
anything he possessed to know what these photographs represented.
Crane his neck as he would, he could see nothing. All he could do was
to watch. Sometimes they laughed, sometimes they became grave;
sometimes they explained, and their guest grew very attentive Once
she even leaned forward eagerly. It was about this time that our jehu
chanced to look at the clock on the mantel, and immediately concluded
to vacate the premises. It was half after ten. He returned to his box
forthwith. (I was going to use the word "alacrity," but I find that
it means "cheerful readiness.") After what seemed to him an
interminable wait, the front door opened and a flood of light blinded
him. He heard Nancy's voice.

"I'm so sorry, Betty, that I can't dine with you on Monday. We are
going to Arlington. So sorry."

"I'm not!" murmured the wretch on the box. "I'm devilish glad!
Imagine passing soup to one's sister! By George, it was a narrow one!
It would have been all over then."

"Well, there will be plenty of times this winter," said Betty. "I
shall see you all at the Country Club Sunday afternoon. Good night,
every one. No, no; there's no need of any of you coming to the
carriage."

But brother Jack _did_ walk to the door with her; however, he
gave not the slightest attention to the groom, for which _he_
was grateful.

"You must all come and spend the evening with me soon," said Betty,
entering the carriage.

"That we shall," said brother Jack, closing the door for her. "Good
night."

"Home, James," said the voice within the carriage.

I do not know whether or not he slept soundly that night on his
stable cot. He never would confess. But it is my private opinion that
he didn't sleep at all, but spent a good part of the night out of
doors, smoking very black, strong cigars.

Celeste, however, could have told you that her mistress, as she
retired, was in a most amiable frame of mind. Once she laughed.




XIII

A RUNAWAY


Four days passed. I might have used the word "sped," only that verb
could not be truthfully applied. Never before in the history of time
(so our jehu thought) did four days cast their shadows more slowly
across the dial of the hours. From noon till night there was a
madding nothing to do but polish bits and buckles and stirrups and
ornamental silver. He would have been totally miserable but for the
morning rides. These were worth while; for he was riding Pirate, and
there was always that expectation of the unexpected. But Pirate
behaved himself puzzlingly well. Fortunately for the jehu, these
rides were always into the north country. He was continually
possessed with fear lest she would make him drive through the
shopping district. If he met Nancy, it would be, in the parlance of
the day, all off. Nancy would have recognized him in a beard like a
Cossack's; and here he was with the boy's face--the face she never
would forget.

He was desperately in love. I do not know what desperately in love
is, my own love's course running smoothly enough; but I can testify
that it was making Mr. Robert thin and appetiteless. Every morning
the impulse came to him to tell her all; but every morning his
courage oozed like Bob Acres', and his lips became dumb. I dare say
that if she had questioned him he would have told her all; but for
some reason she had ceased to inquire into his past. Possibly her
young mind was occupied with pleasanter things.

He became an accomplished butler, and served so well in rehearsals
that Pierre could only grumble. One afternoon she superintended the
comedy. She found a thousand faults with him, so many, in fact, that
Pierre did not understand what it meant, and became possessed with
the vague idea that she was hitting him over the groom's shoulder. He
did not like it; and later, when they were alone, Warburton was
distinctly impressed with Pierre's displeasure.

"You can not please _her_, and you can not please _me_.
Bah! Zat ees vat comes uf teaching a groom table manners instead uf
stable manners. And you vill smell uf horse! I do _not_
understand Mees Annesley; no!"

[Illustration: "May I go now, Miss?"--ACT II]

And there were other humiliations, petty ones. She chid him on having
the stirrup too long or too short; the curb chain was rusting; this
piece of ornamental silver did not shine like that one; Jane's
fetlocks were too long; Pirate's hoofs weren't thoroughly oiled. With
dogged patience he tried to remedy all these faults. It was only when
they had had a romping run down the road that this spirit fell away
from her, and she talked pleasantly.

Twice he ran into Karloff; but that shrewd student of human nature
did not consider my hero worth studying; a grave mistake on his part,
as he was presently to learn. He was a handsome man, and the only
thing he noticed about the groom was his handsome face. He considered
it a crime for a servant to be endowed with personal attractions. A
servant in the eyes of a Russian noble excites less interest than a
breedless dog. Mr. Robert made no complaint; he was very well
satisfied to have the count ignore him entirely. Once he met the
count in the Turkish room, where, in the capacity of butler, he
served liqueur and cigars. There was a certain grim humor in lighting
his rival's cigar for him. This service was a test of his ability to
pass through a room without knocking over taborets and chairs.
Another time they met, when Betty and the two of them took a long
ride. Karloff _did_ notice how well the groom rode his mettlesome
mount, being himself a soldier and a daring horseman. Warburton
had some trouble. Pirate did not take to the idea of breathing Jane
and Dick's dust; he wanted to lead these second-raters. Mr, James'
arms ached that afternoon from the effort he had put forth to restrain
Pirate and keep him in his proper place, five yards to the rear.

Nothing happened Sunday; the day went by uneventfully. He escaped the
ordeal of driving her to the Chevy Chase Club, William being up that
afternoon.

Then Monday came, and with it Betty's curious determination to ride
Pirate.

"You wish to ride Pirate, Miss?" exclaimed James, his horror of the
idea openly manifest.

"Saddle him for me,"--peremptorily. "I desire to ride him. I find
Jane isn't exciting enough."

"Pardon me, Miss Annesley," he said, "but I had rather you would not
make the attempt."

"You had rather I would not make the attempt?"--slowly repeating the
words, making a knife of each one of them, tipped with the poison of
her contempt. "I do not believe I quite understand you."

He bravely met the angry flash of her eyes. There were times when the
color of these eyes did not resemble sapphires; rather disks of gun-
metal, caused by a sudden dilation of the pupils.

"Yes, Miss, I had rather you would not."

"James, you forget yourself. Saddle Pirate, and take Jane back to the
stables. Besides, Jane has a bit of a cold." She slapped her boot
with her riding-crop and indolently studied the scurrying clouds
overhead; for the day was windy.

Soberly Warburton obeyed. He was hurt and angry, and he knew not what
besides. Heavens, if anything should happen to her! His hopes rose a
bit. Pirate had shown no temper so far that morning. He docilely
permitted his master to put on the side-saddle. But as he came out
into the air again, he threw forward his ears, stretched out his long
black neck, took in a great breath, and whinnied a hoarse challenge
to the elements. William had already saddled Dick, who looked askance
at his black rival's small compact heels.

"I am afraid of him," said Warburton, as he returned. "He will run
away with you. I did not wholly subjugate him the other day. He pulls
till my arms ache."

Miss Annesley shrugged and patted Pirate on the nose and offered him
a lump of sugar. The thirst for freedom and a wild run down the wind
lurked in Pirate's far-off gazing eyes, and he ignored the sign of
conciliation which his mistress made him.

"I am not afraid of him. Besides, Dick can outrun and out jump him."

This did not reassure Warburton, nor did he know what this comparison
meant, being an ordinary mortal.

"With all respect to you, Miss Annesley, I am sorry that you are
determined to ride him. He is most emphatically not a lady's horse,
and you have never ridden him. Your skirts will irritate him, and if
he sees your crop, he'll bolt."

She did not reply, but merely signified her desire to mount. No
sooner was she up, however, than she secretly regretted her caprice;
but not for a hundred worlds would she have permitted this groom to
know. But Pirate, with that rare instinct of the horse, knew that his
mistress was not sure of him. He showed the whites of his eyes and
began pawing the gravel. The girl glanced covertly at her groom and
found no color in his cheeks. Two small muscular lumps appeared at
the corners of her jaws. She would ride Pirate, and nothing should
stop her; nothing, nothing. Womanlike, knowing herself to be in the
wrong, she was furious.

And Pirate surprised them both. During the first mile he behaved
himself in the most gentlemanly fashion; and if he shied once or
twice, waltzed a little, it was only because he was full of life and
spirit. They trotted, they cantered, ran and walked. Warburton,
hitherto holding himself in readiness for whatever might happen,
relaxed the tension of his muscles, and his shoulders sank
relievedly. Perhaps, after all, his alarm had been needless. The
trouble with Pirate might be the infrequency with which he had been
saddled and ridden. But he knew that the girl would not soon forget
his interference. There would be more humiliations, more bitter pills
for him to swallow. It pleased him, however, to note the ease with
which Dick kept pace with Pirate.

As for the most beautiful person in all the great world, I am afraid
that she was beginning to feel self-important. Now that her
confidence was fully restored, she never once spoke to, or looked at,
her groom. Occasionally from the corner of her eye she could see the
white patch on Dick's nose.

"James," she said maliciously and suddenly, "go back five yards. I
wish to ride alone."

Warburton, his face burning, fell back. And thus she made her first
mistake. The second and final mistake came immediately after. She
touched Pirate with her heel, and he broke from a trot into a lively
gallop. Dick, without a touch of the boot, kept his distance to a
foot. Pirate, no longer seeing Dick at his side, concluded that he
had left his rival behind; and the suppressed mischief in his black
head began to find an outlet. Steadily he arched his neck; steadily
but surely he drew down on the reins. The girl felt the effort and
tried to frustrate it. In backing her pull with her right hand, the
end of her crop flashed down the side of Pirate's head--the finishing
touch. There was a wild leap, a blur of dust, and Mr. Pirate, well
named after his freebooting sires, his head down where he wanted it,
his feet rolling like a snare-drum, Mr. Pirate ran away, headed for
heaven only knew where.

For a brief moment Warburton lost his nerve; he was struck with
horror. If she could not hold her seat, she would be killed or
dreadfully hurt, and perhaps disfigured. It seemed rather strange, as
he recalled it, that Dick, instead of himself, should have taken the
initiative. The noble sorrel, formerly a cavalry horse, shot forward
magnificently. Doubtless his horse-sense took in the situation, or
else he did not like the thought of yonder proud, supercilious show-
horse beating him in a running race. So, a very fast mile was put to
the rear.

The girl, appreciating her peril, did as all good horsewomen would
have done: locked her knee on the horn and held on. The rush of wind
tore the pins from her hair which, like a golden plume, stretched out
behind her. (Have you ever read anything like this before? I dare
say. But to Warburton and the girl, it never occurred that other
persons had gone through like episodes. It was real, and actual, and
single, and tragic to them.)

The distance between the two horses began slowly to lessen, and
Warburton understood, in a nebulous way, what the girl had meant when
she said that Dick could outrun Pirate. If Pirate kept to the road,
Dick would bring him down; but if Pirate took it into his head to
vault a fence! Warburton shuddered. Faster, faster, over this roll of
earth, clattering across this bridge, around this curve and that
angle. Once the sight of a team drawing a huge grain-wagon sent a
shiver to Warburton's heart. But they thundered past with a foot to
spare. The old negro on the seat stared after them, his ebony face
drawn with wonder and the whites of his eyes showing.

Foot by foot, yard by yard, the space lessened, till Dick's nose was
within three feet of Pirate's flowing tail. Warburton fairly lifted
Dick along with his knees. I only wish I could describe the race as
my jehu told it to me. The description held me by the throat. I could
see the flashing by of trees and houses and fields; the scampering of
piccaninnies across the road; the horses from the meadows dashing up
to the fences and whinnying; the fine stone and dust which Pirate's
rattling heels threw into my jehu's face and eyes; the old pain
throbbing anew in his leg. And when he finally drew alongside the
black brute and saw the white, set face of the girl he loved, I can
imagine no greater moment but one in his life. There was no fear on
her face, but there was appeal in her eyes as she half turned her
head. He leaned across the intervening space and slid his arm around
her waist. The two horses came together and twisted his leg cruelly.
His jaws snapped.

"Let the stirrup go!" he cried. "Let go, quick!" She heard him. "Your
knee from the horn! I can't keep them together any longer. Now!"

Brave and plucky and cool she was. She obeyed him instantly. There
was a mighty heave, a terrible straining of the back and the knees,
and Pirate was freed of his precious burden. The hardest part of it
came now. Dick could not be made to slow down abruptly. He wanted to
keep right on after his rival. So, between holding the girl with his
right arm and pulling the horse with his left, Warburton saw that he
could keep up this terrible effort but a very short time. Her arms
were convulsively wound around his neck, and this added to the
strain. Not a word did she say; her eyes were closed, as if she
expected any moment to be dashed to the earth.

But Dick was only a mortal horse. The fierce run and the double
burden began to tell, and shortly his head came up. Warburton stopped
him. The girl slid to the ground, and in a moment he was at her side.
And just in time. The reaction was too much for her. Dazedly she
brushed her hair from her eyes, stared wildly at Warburton, and
fainted. He did not catch her with that graceful precision which on
the stage is so familiar to us. No. He was lucky to snatch one of her
arms, thus preventing her head from striking the road. He dragged her
to the side of the highway and rested her head on his shaking knees.
Things grew dark for a time. To tell the truth, he himself was very
close to that feminine weakness which the old fellows, in their rough
and ready plays, used to call "vapours". But he forced his heart to
steady itself.

And what do you suppose the rascal did--with nobody but Dick to
watch him? Why, he did what any healthy young man in love would have
done: pressed his lips to the girl's hair, his eyes filling and half
a sob in his parched throat. He dolefully pictured himself a modern
Antiochus, dying of love and never confessing it. Then he kissed her
hair again; only her hair, for somehow he felt that her lips and
cheeks were as yet inviolable to his touch. I should have liked to
see the picture they made: the panting horse a dozen rods away,
looking at them inquiringly; the girl in her dust-covered habit, her
hair spreading out like seaweed on a wave, her white face, her figure
showing its graceful lines; my jehu, his hair matted to his brow, the
streaks of dust and perspiration on his face, the fear and love and
longing in his dark eyes. I recollect a picture called _Love and
Honor,_ or something like that. It never appealed to me. It lacked
action. It simply represented a fellow urging a girl to elope with
him. Both of them were immaculately dressed. But here, on this old
highway leading into Maryland, was something real. A battle had been
fought and won.

Fainting is but transitory; by and by she opened her eyes, and stared
vaguely into the face above her. I do not know what she saw there;
whatever it was it caused her to struggle to her feet. There was
color enough in her cheeks now; and there was a question, too, in her
eyes. Of Warburton it asked, "What did you do when I lay there
unconscious?" I'm afraid there was color in his face, too. Her gaze
immediately roved up the road. There was no Pirate, only a haze of
dust. Doubtless he was still going it, delighted over the trouble he
had managed to bring about. Warburton knelt at the girl's side and
brushed the dust from her skirt. She eyed him curiously. I shan't say
that she smiled; I don't know, for I wasn't there.

Meanwhile she made several futile attempts to put up her hair, and as
a finality she braided it and let it hang down her back. Suddenly and
unaccountably she grew angry--angry at herself, at James, at the
rascally horse that had brought her to this pass. Warburton saw
something of this emotion in her eyes, and to avoid the storm he
walked over to Dick, picked up the reins, and led him back.

"If you will mount Dick, Miss," he said, "I will lead him home. It's
about five miles, I should say."

The futility and absurdity of her anger aroused her sense of the
ridiculous; and a smile, warm and merry, flashed over her stained
face. It surprised her groom.

"Thank you, James. You were right. I ought not to have ridden Pirate.
I am punished for my conceit. Five miles? It will be a long walk."

"I shan't mind it in the least," replied James, inordinately happy;
and he helped her to the saddle and adjusted the left stirrup.

So the journey home began. Strangely enough, neither seemed to care
particularly what had or might become of Pirate. He disappeared,
mentally and physically. One thing dampened the journey for
Warburton. His "game leg" ached cruelly, and after the second mile
(which was traversed without speech from either of them), he fell
into a slight limp. From her seat above and behind him, she saw this
limp.

"You have hurt yourself?" she asked gently.

"Not to-day, Miss,"--briefly.

"When he ran away with you?"

"No. It's an old trouble."

"While you were a soldier?"

"Yes."

"How?"

He turned in surprise. All these questions were rather unusual.
Nevertheless he answered her, and truthfully.

"I was shot in the leg by a drunken Indian."

"While on duty?"

"Yes." Unconsciously he was forgetting to add "Miss", which was the
patent of his servility. And I do not think that just then she
noticed this subtraction from the respect due her.

It was eleven o'clock when they arrived at the gates. She dismounted
alone. Warburton was visibly done up.

"Any orders for this afternoon, Miss?"

"I shall want the victoria at three. I have some shopping to do and a
call to make. Send William after Pirate. I am very grateful for what
you have done."

He made no reply, for he saw her father coming down the steps.

"Betty," said the colonel, pale and worried, "have you been riding
Pirate? Where is he, and what in the world has happened?"--noting the
dust on her habit and her tangled hair.

She explained: she told the story rather coolly, Warburton thought,
but she left out no detail.

"You have James to thank for my safety, father. He was very calm and
clear-headed."

_Calm and clear-headed!_ thought Warburton.

The girl then entered the house, humming. Most women would have got
out the lavender salts and lain down the rest of the day, considering
the routine of a fashionable dinner, which was the chief duty of the
evening.

"I am grateful to you, James. My daughter is directly in your care
when she rides, and I give you full authority. Never permit her to
mount any horse but her own. She is all I have; and if anything
should happen to her--"

"Yes, sir; I understand."

The colonel followed his daughter; and Warburton led Dick to the
stables, gave his orders to William, and flung himself down on his
cot. He was dead tired. And the hour he had dreaded was come! He was
to drive her through the shopping district. Well, so be it. If any
one exposed him, very good. This groom business was decidedly like
work. And there was that confounded dinner-party, and he would have
to limp around a table and carry soup plates! And as likely as not he
would run into the very last person he expected to see.

Which he did.




XIV

AN ORDEAL OR TWO


Mr. Robert vows that he will never forgive me for the ten minutes'
agony which I gratuitously added to his measure. It came about in
this wise. I was on my way down Seventeenth Street that afternoon,
and it was in front of a fashionable apartment house that I met him.
He was seated on his box, the whip at the proper angle, and his eyes
riveted on his pair's ears. It was the first time I had seen him
since the day of the episode at the police-station. He was growing
thin. He did not see me, and he did not even notice me till I stopped
and the sound of my heels on the walk ceased. Arms akimbo, I surveyed
him.

"Well?" I began. I admit that the smile I offered him was a deal like
that which a cat offers a cornered mouse.

He turned his head. I shall not repeat the word he muttered. It was
very improper, though they often refer to it in the Sabbath-schools,
always in a hushed breath, however, as though to full-voice it would
only fan the flames still higher.

"What have you to say for yourself?" I went on.

"Nothing for myself, but for you, move on and let me alone, or when I
get the opportunity, Chuck, I'll punch your head, glasses or no
glasses."

"Brother-in-law or no brother-in-law."

"Chuck, will you go on?"--hoarsely. "I mean it"

I saw that he did. "You don't look very happy for a man who has
cracked so tremendous a joke."

"Will you go along?"

"Not till I get good and ready, James. I've told too many lies on
your account already not to make myself a present of this joyful
reunion. Has Miss Annesley any idea of the imposture?"

He did not answer.

"How did you like waiting in Scott Circle the other night?"

Still no answer. I have half an idea that he was making ready to leap
from his box. He ran his fingers up and down the lines. I could see
that he was mad through and through; but I enjoyed the scene
nevertheless. He deserved a little roasting on the gridiron.

"I am given to understand," I continued, "that you act as butler,
besides, and pass the soup around the table."

Silence. Then I heard a door close, and saw a look of despair grow on
his face. I turned and saw Miss Annesley and Mrs. Chadwick coming
down the steps.

"Why, how do you do, Mr. Henderson? Mrs. Chadwick."

"I have already had the pleasure of meeting this famous young
orator," purred Mrs. Chadwick, giving me her hand. She was a
fashionable, not to say brilliant, _intrigante_. I knew her to
have been concerned indirectly with half a dozen big lobby schemes.
She was rather wealthy. But she was seen everywhere, and everywhere
was admired. She was as completely at home abroad as here in
Washington. She was a widow, perhaps thirty-eight, handsome and
fascinating, a delightful _raconteur_, and had the remarkable
reputation of never indulging in scandal. She was the repository of
more secrets than I should care to discover.

I recall one night at a state function when she sat between the
French ambassador and that wily Chinaman, Li Hung Chang. She
discoursed on wines in French with the ambassador and immediately
turned to the Chinaman and recited Confucius in the original Chinese.
Where she had ever found time to study Chinese is a mystery to every
one. The incident made her quite famous that winter. Brains are
always tolerated in Washington, and if properly directed, push a
person a good deal further than wealth or pedigree. Washington
forgives everything but stupidity.

Not until recently did I learn that at one time Karloff had been very
attentive to her. His great knowledge of American politics doubtless
came to him through her.

"Where are you bound?" asked Miss Annesley.

"I am on the way to the War Department."

"Plenty of room; jump in and we shall drop you there. James, drive to
the War Department."

Ordinarily I should have declined, as I generally prefer to walk; but
in this instance it would be superfluous to say that I was delighted
to accept the invitation. I secretly hugged myself as I thought of
the driver.

"How is Miss Warburton?" asked Miss Annesley, as she settled back
among the cushions.

"Beautiful as ever," I replied, smiling happily,

"You must meet Miss Warburton, Grace,"--speaking to Mrs. Chadwick,
who looked at me with polite inquiry. "One of the most charming girls
in the land, and as good as she is beautiful. Mr. Henderson is the
most fortunate of young men."

"So I admit. She was greatly disappointed that you did not meet her
younger brother." First shot at the groom.

"I did expect to meet him, but I understand that he has gone on a
hunting expedition. Whom does he resemble?"

"Neither Nancy nor Jack," I said. "He's a good-looking beggar,
though, only you can't depend upon him for five minutes at a time.
Hadn't seen the family in more than two years. Spends one night at
home, and is off again, no one knows where. Some persons like
him, but I like a man with more stability. Not but what he has his good
points; but he is a born vagabond. His brother expects to get him a
berth at Vienna and is working rather successfully toward that end."
I wondered how this bit of news affected the groom.

"A diplomat?" said Mrs. Chadwick. "That is the life for a young man
with brains. Is he a good linguist?"

"Capital! Speaks French, German, and Spanish, besides I don't know
how many Indian sign-languages." Now I was patting the groom on the
back. I sat facing the ladies, so it was impossible to see the
expression on his face. I kept up this banter till we arrived at the
Department. I bade the ladies good day. I do not recollect when I
enjoyed ten minutes more thoroughly.

An hour in the shopping district, that is to say, up and down
Pennsylvania Avenue, where everybody who was anybody was similarly
occupied, shopping, nearly took the spine out of our jehu. Everywhere
he imagined he saw Nancy. And half a dozen times he saw persons whom
he knew, persons he had dined with in New York, persons he had met
abroad. But true to human nature, they were looking toward higher
things than a groom in livery. When there was no more room for
bundles, the women started for Mrs. Chadwick's apartments.

Said Mrs. Chadwick in French: "Where, in the name of uncommon things,
did you find such a handsome groom?"

"I _was_ rather lucky," replied Miss Annesley in the same
tongue. "Don't you see something familiar about him?"

Warburton shuddered.

"Familiar? What do you mean?"

"It is the groom who ran away with us."

"Heavens, no!" Mrs. Chadwick raised her lorgnette. "Whatever
possessed you?"

"Mischief, as much as anything."

"But the risk!"

"I am not afraid. There was something about him that appeared very
much like a mystery, and you know how I adore mysteries."

"And this is the fellow we saw in the police-court, sitting among
those light o' loves?" Mrs. Chadwick could not fully express her
surprise.

"I can't analyze the impulse which prompted me to pay his fine and
engage him."

"And after that affair at the carriage-door! Where is your pride?"

"To tell the truth, I believe he did make a mistake. Maybe I hired
him because I liked his looks." Betty glanced amusedly at the groom,
whose neck and ears were red. She laughed.

"You always were an extraordinary child. I do not understand it in
the least. I am even worried. He may be a great criminal."

"No, not a great criminal," said Betty, recollecting the ride of that
morning; "but a first-class horseman, willing and obedient. I have
been forced to make James serve as butler. He has been under the
hands of our cook, and I have been watching them. How I have laughed!
Of all droll scenes!"

So she had laughed, eh? Warburton's jaws snapped. She had been
watching, too?

"I rode Pirate this morning--"

"You rode that horse?" interrupted Mrs. Chadwick.

"Yes, and he ran away with me in fine style. If it hadn't been for
the new groom, I shouldn't be here, and the dinner would be a dismal
failure, with me in bed with an arm or leg broken. Heavens! I never
was so frightened in all my life. We went so fast against the wind
that I could scarce breathe. And when it was all over, I fainted like
a ninny."

"Fainted! I should have thought you would. _I_ should have
fallen off the animal and been killed. Betty, you certainly have
neither forethought nor discretion. The very idea of your attempting
to ride that animal!"

"Well, I am wiser, and none the worse for the scare.... James, stop,
stop!" Betty cried suddenly.

When this command struck his sense of hearing, James was pretty far
away in thought. He was wondering if all this were true. If it was,
he must make the best of it; but if it was a dream, he wanted to wake
up right away, because it was becoming nightmarish.

"James!" The end of a parasol tickled him in the ribs and he drew up
somewhat frightened. What was going to happen now? He was soon to
find out. For this was to be the real climax of the day; or at least,
the incident was pregnant with the possibilities of a climax.

"Colonel, surely you are not going to pass us by in this fashion?"
cried the girl. They were almost opposite the Army and Navy Club.

"Why, is that you, Miss Betty? Pass you by? Only when I grow blind!"
roared a lion-like voice. "Very glad to see you, Mrs. Chadwick."

That voice, of all the voices he had ever heard! A chill of
indescribable terror flew up and down my jehu's spine, and his pores
closed up. He looked around cautiously. It was he, he of all men: his
regimental colonel, who possessed the most remarkable memory of any
Army man west of the Mississippi, and who had often vowed that he
knew his subalterns so well that he could always successfully
prescribe for their livers!

"I was just about to turn into the club for my mail," declared the
colonel. "It was very good of you to stop me. I'll wager you've been
speculating in the shops,"--touching the bundles with his cane. "You
win," laughed Betty. "But I'll give you a hundred guesses in which to
find out what any of these packages contains."

"Guessing is a bad business. Whatever these things are, they can add
but little to the beauty of those who will wear them; for I presume
Mrs. Chadwick has some claim upon these bundles."

"Very adroitly worded," smiled Mrs. Chadwick, who loved a silken
phrase.

"We shall see you at dinner to-night?"

"All the battalions of England could not keep me away from that
festive board," the colonel vowed. (Another spasm for the groom!)
"And how is that good father of yours?"

"As kind and loving as ever."

"I wish you could have seen him in the old days in Virginia," said
the colonel, who, like all old men, continually fell back upon the
reminiscent. "Handsomest man in the brigade, and a fight made him as
happy as a bull-pup. I was with him the day he first met your
mother,"--softly. "How she humiliated him because he wore the blue!
She was obliged to feed him--fortunes of war; but I could see that
she hoped each mouthful would choke him."

"What! My mother wished that?"

Mrs. Chadwick laughed. The groom's chin sank into his collar.

"Wait a moment! She wasn't in love with him then. We were camped on
that beautiful Virginian home of yours for nearly a month. You know
how courtly he always was and is. Well, to every rebuff he replied
with a smile and some trifling favor. She never had to lift her
finger about the house. But one thing he was firm in: she should sit
at the same table during the meals. And when Johnston came thundering
down that memorable day, and your father was shot in the lungs and
fell with a dozen saber cuts besides, you should have seen the
change! He was the prisoner now, she the jailer. In her own white bed
she had him placed, and for two months she nursed him. Ah, that was
the prettiest love affair the world ever saw."

"And why have you not followed his example?" asked Mrs. Chadwick.

The colonel gazed thoughtfully at his old comrade's daughter, and he
saw pity and unbounded respect in her eyes. "They say that for every
heart there is a mate, but I do not believe it. Sometimes there are
two hearts that seek the same mate. One or the other must win or
lose. You will play for me to-night?"

"As often and as long as you please,"--graciously. She was very fond
of this upright old soldier, whom she had known since babyhood.

It was now that the colonel casually turned his attention to the
groom, He observed him. First, his gray eyebrows arched abruptly in
surprise, then sank in puzzlement.

"What is it?" inquired Betty, noting these signs.

"Nothing; nothing of importance," answered the colonel, growing
violently red.

It would not be exaggerating to say that if the colonel turned red,
his one-time orderly grew purple, only this purple faded quickly into
a chalky pallor.

"Well, perhaps I am keeping you," remarked the colonel, soberly, "I
shall hold you to your promise about the music."

"We are to have plenty of music. There will foe a famous singer and a
fine pianist."

"You will play that what-d'-ye-call-it from Schumann I like so well.
I shall want you to play that I want something in the way of memory
to take back West with me. Good-by, then, till to-night."

"Good-by. All right, James; home," said the girl. James relievedly
touched his horses.

The colonel remained standing at the curb till the victoria
disappeared. Of what he was thinking I don't know; but he finally
muttered "James?" in an inquiring way, and made for the club, shaking
his head, as if suddenly confronted by a remarkably abstruse problem.

Further on I shall tell you how he solved it.




XV

RETROSPECTIVE


Show me those invisible, imperceptible steps by which a man's honor
first descends; show me the way back to the serene altitude of clean
conscience, and I will undertake to enlighten you upon the secret of
every great historical event, tragic or otherwise. If you will search
history carefully, you will note that the basic cause of all great
events, such as revolutions, civil strifes, political assassinations,
foreign wars, and race oppressions, lay not in men's honor so much as
in some one man's dishonor. A man, having committed a dishonorable
act, may reestablish himself in the eyes of his fellow-beings, but
ever and ever he silently mocks himself and dares not look into the
mirror of his conscience.

Honor is comparative, as every one will agree. It is only in the
highly developed mind that it reaches its superlative state. Either
this man becomes impregnable to the assaults of the angel of the
pitch robes, or he boldly plunges into the frightful blackness which
surrounds her. The great greed of power, the great greed of wealth,
the great greed of hate, the great greed of jealousy, and the great
greed of love, only these tempt him.

Now, of dishonors, which does man hold in the greatest abhorrence?
This question needs no pondering. It may be answered simply. The
murderer, the thief, and the rogue--we look upon these callously. But
Judas! Treachery to our country! This is the nadir of dishonor;
nothing could be blacker. We never stop to look into the causes, nor
does history, that most upright and impartial of judges; we brand
instantly. Who can tell the truth about Judas Iscariot, and Benedict
Arnold, and the host of others? I can almost tolerate a Judas who
betrays for a great love. There seems to be a stupendous elimination
of self in the man who betrays for those he loves, braving the
consequences, the ignominy, the dishonor, the wretchedness; otherwise
I should not have undertaken to write this bit of history.

To betray a friend, that is bad; to betray a woman, that is still
worse; but to betray one's country!-to commit an act which shall
place her at the mercy of her enemies! Ah, the ignoble deaths of the
men who were guilty of this crime! And if men have souls, as we are
told they have, how the souls of these men must writhe as they look
into the minds of living men and behold the horror and contempt in
which each traitor's name is held there!

Have you ever thought of the legion of men who have been thrust back
from the very foot of this precipice, either by circumstances or by
the revolt of conscience? These are the men who reestablish
themselves in the eyes of their fellow-beings, but who for ever
silently mock themselves and dare not look into the mirror of their
consciences.

In this world motive is everything. A bad thing may be done for a
good purpose, or, the other way around. This is the story of a crime,
the motive of which was good.

Once upon a time there lived a soldier, a gentleman born, a courtier,
a man of fine senses, of high integrity, of tenderness, of courage;
he possessed a splendid physical beauty, besides estates, and a
comfortable revenue, or rather, he presided over one. Above all this,
he was the father of a girl who worshiped him, and not without
reason. What mysterious causes should set to work to ruin this man,
to thrust him from light into darkness? What step led him to attempt
to betray his country, even in times of peace, to dishonor his name,
a name his honesty had placed high on the rolls of glory? What
defense can he offer? Well, I shall undertake to defend him; let
yours be the verdict.

Enforced idleness makes a criminal of a poor man; it urges the man of
means to travel. Having seen his native land, it was only natural
that my defendant should desire to see foreign countries. So,
accompanied by his child, he went abroad, visited the famous
capitals, and was the guest of honor at his country's embassies. It
was a delightful period. Both were as happy as fate ever allows a
human being to be. The father had received his honorable discharge,
and till recently had held a responsible position in the War
Department. His knowledge had proved of no small value to the
government, for he was a born strategist, and his hobby was the coast
defenses. He never beheld a plan that he did not reproduce it on the
back of an envelope, on any handy scrap of paper, and then pore over
it through the night. He had committed to memory the smallest
details, the ammunition supplies of each fort, the number of guns,
the garrison, the pregnable and impregnable sides. He knew the
resource of each, too; that is to say, how quickly aid could be
secured, the nearest transportation routes, what forage might be had.
He had even submitted plans for a siege gun.

One day, in the course of their travels, the father and daughter
stopped at Monte Carlo. Who hasn't heard of that city of fever? Who
that has seen it can easily forget its gay harbor, its beautiful
walks, its crowds, its music, its hotels, its white temple of
fortune? Now, my defendant had hitherto ignored the principality of
Monaco. The tales of terror which had reached his ears did not
prepossess him in its favor. But his daughter had friends there, and
she wanted to see them. There would be dances on the private yacht,
and dinners, and teas, and fireworks. On the third night of his
arrival he was joined by the owner of the yacht, a millionaire banker
whose son was doing the honors as host. I believe that there was a
musicale on board that night, and as the banker wasn't particularly
fond of this sort of entertainment, he inveigled his soldier friend
to accompany him on a sight-seeing trip. At midnight they entered the
temple of fortune. At first the soldier demurred; but the banker told
him that he hadn't seen Monte Carlo unless he saw the wheel go
around. So, laughing, they entered the halls.

The passion for gaming is born in us all, man and woman alike, and is
conceded by wise analysts to be the most furious of all passions and
the most lasting. In some, happily, the serpent sleeps for ever, the
fire is for ever banked. But it needs only the opportunity to rouse
the dull ember into flame, to stir the venom of the serpent. It seems
a simple thing to toss a coin on the roulette boards. Sometimes the
act is done contemptuously, sometimes indifferently, sometimes in the
spirit of fun and curiosity; but the result is always the same.

The banker played for a while, won and lost, lost and won. The
soldier put his hand into a pocket and drew forth a five-franc piece.
He placed it on a number. The angel in the pitch robes is always
lying in wait for man to make his first bad step; so she urged
fortune to let this man win. It is an unwritten law, high up on
Olympus, that the gods must give to the gods; only the prayers of the
mortals go unanswered.

So my defendant won. He laughed like a boy who had played marbles for
"keeps" and had taken away his opponent's agates. His mind was
perfectly innocent of any wrong-doing. That night he won a thousand
francs. His real first bad step was in hiding the escapade from his
daughter. The following night he won again. Then he dallied about the
flame till one night the lust of his forebears shone forth from his
eyes. The venom of the serpent spread, the ember grew into a flame.
His daughter, legitimately enjoying herself with the young people,
knew nothing nor dreamed. Indeed, he never entered the temple till
after he had kissed her good night.

He lost. He lost twice, thrice, in succession. One morning he woke up
to the fact that he was several thousand dollars on the wrong side of
the book. If the money had been his own, he would have stopped, and
gone his way, cured. But it was money which he held in trust. He
_must_ replace it. The angel in the pitch robes stood at his
side; she even laid a hand on his shoulder and urged him to win back
what he had lost. Then indeed he could laugh, go his way, and gamble
no more. This was excellent advice. That winter he lost something
like fifteen thousand. Then began the progress of decline. The
following summer his losses were even greater than before. He began
to mortgage the estates, for his authority over his daughter's
property was absolute. He dabbled in stocks; a sudden fall in gold,
and he realized that his daughter was nearly penniless. Ah, had he
been alone, had the money been his, he would have faced poverty with
all the courage of a brave man. But the girl, the girl! She must
never know, she must never want for those luxuries to which she was
accustomed. For her sake he must make one more effort He _must_
win, must, must! He raised more money on the property. He became
irritable, nervous, to which were added sudden bursts of tenderness
which the girl could not very well understand.

The summer preceding the action of this tale saw them at Dieppe. At
one time he had recovered something between sixty and seventy
thousand of his losses. Ah, had he stopped then, confessed to his
daughter, all would have gone well But, no; he must win the entire
sum. He lost, lost, lost. The crash came in August. But a corner of
the vast Virginian estates was left, and this did not amount to
twenty thousand. Five francs carelessly tossed upon a roulette table
had ruined and dishonored him. The angel of the pitch robes had
fairly enveloped him now. The thought that he had gambled uselessly
his daughter's legacy, the legacy which her mother had left
confidingly in his care, filled his soul with the bitterness of gall.
And she continued the merry round of happiness, purchasing expensive
garments, jewelry, furs, the little things which women love; gave
dinners and teas and dances, considered herself an heiress, and
thought the world a very pleasant place to live in. Every laugh from
her was a thorn to him, the light of happiness in her eyes was a
reproach, for he knew that she was dancing toward the precipice which
he had digged for her.

Struggling futilely among these nettles of despair, he took the final
step. His ruin became definitive. His evil goddess saw to it that an
opportunity should present itself. (How simple all this reads! As I
read it over it does not seem credible. Think of a man who has
reached the height of his ambition, has dwelt there serenely, and
then falls in this silly, inexcusable fashion! Well, that is human
nature, the human part of it. Only here and there do we fall
grandly.)

One starlit night he met a distinguished young diplomat, rich and
handsome. He played some, but to pass away the time rather than to
coquet with fortune. He was lucky. The man who plays for the mere fun
of it is generally lucky. He asks no favors from fortune; he does not
pay any attention to her, and, woman-like, she is piqued. He won
heavily this night; my soldier lost correspondingly heavily. The
diplomat pressed a loan upon his new-found friend, who, with his
usual luck, lost it.

The diplomat was presented to the daughter. They owned to mutual
acquaintance in Paris and Washington. The three attended the concert.
The girl returned to the hotel bubbling with happiness and the echoes
of enchanting melodies, for she was an accomplished musician. She
retired and left the two men to their coffee and cigars. The
conversation took several turns, and at length stopped at diplomacy,

"It has always puzzled me," said the soldier, "how Russia finds out
all she does."

"That is easily explained. Russia has the wisdom of the serpent. Here
is a man who possesses a secret which Russia must have. They study
him. If he is gallant, one day he meets a fascinating woman; if he is
greedy, he turns to find a bowl of gold at his elbow; if he seeks
power, Russia points out the shortest road."

"But her knowledge of foreign army and naval strength?"

"Money does all that. Russia possesses an accurate knowledge of every
fort, ship and gun England boasts of; France, Germany, and Japan. We
have never taken it into our heads to investigate America. Till
recently your country as a foe to Russian interests had dropped below
the horizon. And now Russia finds that she must proceed to do what
she has done to all other countries; that is, duplicate her rival's
fortification plans, her total military and naval strength; and so
forth, and so on. The United States is not an enemy, but there are
possibilities of her becoming so. Some day she must wrest Cuba from
Spain, and then she may become a recognized quantity in the Pacific."

"The Pacific?"

"Even so. Having taken Cuba, the United States, to protect her
western coast, will be forced to occupy the Philippines; and having
taken that archipelago, she becomes a menace to Russian territorial
expansion in the far East. I do not always speak so frankly. But I
wish you to see the necessity of knowing all about your coast
defenses."

"It can not be done!"--spiritedly. So far the American had only
gambled.

"It can and will be done," smiling. "Despite the watchfulness of your
officials, despite your secret service, despite all obstacles, Russia
will quietly gain the required information. She possesses a key to
every lock."

"And what might this key be?"--with tolerant irony.

"Gold."

"But if the United States found out what Russia was doing, there
might be war."

"Nothing of the kind. Russia would simply deny all knowledge. The man
whom she selected to do the work would be discredited, banished,
perhaps sent to Siberia to rot in the mines. No, there would be no
war. Russia would weigh all these possibilities in selecting her arm.
She would choose a man of high intellect, rich, well-known in social
circles, a linguist, a man acquainted with all histories and all
phases of life, a diplomat, perhaps young and pleasing. You will say,
why does he accept so base a task? When a Russian noble takes his
oath in the presence of his czar, he becomes simply an arm; he no
longer thinks, his master thinks for him. He only acts. So long as he
offers his services without remuneration, his honor remains
untouched, unsullied. A paid spy is the basest of all creatures."

"Count, take care that I do not warn my country of Russia's purpose.
You are telling me very strange things." The American eyed his
companion sharply.

"Warn the United States? I tell you, it will not matter. All Russia
would need would be a dissatisfied clerk. What could he not do with
half a million francs?" The diplomat blew a cloud of smoke through
his nostrils and filliped the end of his cigarette.

"A hundred thousand dollars?"

The diplomat glanced amusedly at his American friend. "I suppose that
sounds small enough to you rich Americans. But to a clerk it reads
wealth."

The American was silent. A terrible thought flashed through his
brain, a thought that he repulsed almost immediately.

"Of course, I am only speculating; nothing has been done as yet."

"Then something _is_ going to be done?" asked the American,
clearing his voice.

"One day or another. If we can not find the clerk, we shall look
higher. We should consider a million francs well invested. America is
rapidly becoming a great power. But let us drop the subject and turn
to something more agreeable to us both. Your daughter is charming. I
honestly confess to you that I have not met her equal in any country.
Pardon my presumption, but may I ask if she is engaged to be
married?"

"Not to my knowledge,"--vastly surprised and at the same time
pleased.

"Are you averse to foreign alliances?" The diplomat dipped the end of
a fresh-lighted cigar into his coffee.

"My dear Count, I am not averse to foreign alliances, but I rather
suspect that my daughter is. This aversion might be overcome,
however."

What a vista was opened to this wretched father! If only she might
marry riches, how easily he might confess what he had done, how
easily all this despair and terror might be dispersed! And here was a
man who was known in the great world, rich, young and handsome.

The other gazed dreamily at the ceiling; from there his gaze traveled
about the coffee-room, with its gathering of coffee-drinkers, and at
length came back to his _vis-a-vis_.

"You will return to Washington?" he asked.

"I shall live there for the winter; that is, I expect to."

"Doubtless we shall see each other this winter, then,"--and the count
threw away his cigar, bade his companion good night, and went to his
room.

How adroitly he had sown the seed! At that period he had no positive
idea upon what kind of ground he had cast it. But he took that chance
which all far-sighted men take, and then waited. There was little he
had not learned about this handsome American with the beautiful
daughter. How he had learned will always remain dark to me. My own
opinion is that he had been studying him during his tenure of office
in Washington, and, with that patience which is making Russia so
formidable, waited for this opportunity.

I shall give the Russian all the justice of impartiality. When he saw
the girl, he rather shrank from the affair. But he had gone too far,
he had promised too much; to withdraw now meant his own defeat, his
government's anger, his political oblivion. And there was a zest in
this life of his. He could no more resist the call of intrigue than a
gambler can resist the croupier's, "Make your game, gentlemen!" I
believe that he loved the girl the moment he set eyes upon her. Her
beauty and bearing distinguished her from the other women he had met,
and her personality was so engaging that her conquest of him was
complete and spontaneous. How to win this girl and at the same time
ruin her father was an embarrassing problem. The plan which finally
came to him he repelled again and again, but at length he
surrendered. To get the parent in his power and then to coerce the
girl in case she refused him! To my knowledge this affair was the
first dishonorable act of a very honorable man. But love makes fools
and rogues of us all.

You will question my right to call this diplomat an honest man. As I
have said elsewhere, honor is comparative. Besides, a diplomat
generally falls into the habit of lying successfully to himself.

When the American returned to the world, his cigar was out and his
coffee was stale and cold.

"A million francs!" he murmured. "Two hundred thousand!"

The seed had fallen on fruitful ground.




XVI

THE PREVIOUS AFFAIR


Mrs. Chadwick had completed her toilet and now stood smiling in a
most friendly fashion at the reflection in the long oval mirror. She
addressed this reflection in melodious tones.

"Madam, you are really handsome; and let no false modesty whisper in
your ear that you are not. Few women in Washington have such clear
skin, such firm flesh, such color. Thirty-eight? It is nothing. It is
but the half-way post; one has left youth behind, but one has not
reached old age. Time must be very tolerant, for he has given you a
careful selection. There were no years of storm and poverty, of
violent passions; and if I have truly loved, it has been you, only
you. You are too wise and worldly to love any one but yourself. And
yet, once you stood on the precipice of dark eyes, pale skin, and
melancholy wrinkles. And even now, if he were to speak... Enough!
Enough of this folly. I have something to accomplish to-night." She
glided from the boudoir into the small but luxurious drawing-room
which had often been graced by the most notable men and women in the
country.

Karloff threw aside the book of poems by De Banville, rose, and went
forward to meet her.

"Madam,"--bending and brushing her hand with his lips, "Madam, you
grow handsomer every day. If I were forty, now, I should fear for
your single blessedness."

"Or, if I were two-and-twenty, instead of eight-and-thirty,"--
beginning to draw on her long white gloves. There was a challenge in
her smile.

"Well, yes; if you were two-and-twenty."

"There was a time, not so long ago," she said, drawing his gaze as a
magnet draws a needle, "when the disparity in years was of no
matter."

The count laughed. "That was three years ago; and, if my memory
serves me, you smiled."

"Perhaps I was first to smile; that is all."

"I observe a mental reservation,"--owlishly.

"I will put it plainly, then. I preferred to smile over your
protestations rather than see you laugh over the possibility and the
folly of my loving you."

"Then it was possible?"--with interest.

"Everything is possible ... and often absurd."

"How do you know that I was not truly in love with you?"--narrowing
his eyes.

"It is not explanatory; it can be given only one name--instinct,
which in women and animals is more fully developed than in man.
Besides, at that time you had not learned all about Colonel Annesley,
whose guests we are to be this evening. Whoever would have imagined a
Karloff accepting the hospitalities of an Annesley? Count, hath not
thy rose a canker?"

"Madam!" Karloff was frowning.

"Count, you look like a paladin when you scowl; but scowling never
induces anything but wrinkles. That is why we women frown so seldom.
We smile. But let us return to your query. Supposing I had accepted
your declarations seriously; supposing you had offered me marriage in
that burst of gratitude; supposing I _had_ committed the folly
of becoming a countess: what a position I should be in to-day!"

"I do not understand,"--perplexedly.

"No?"--shrugging. She held forth a gloved arm. "Have you forgotten
how gallantly you used to button my gloves?"

"A thousand pardons! My mind was occupied with the mystery of your
long supposition." He took the arm gracefully and proceeded to slip
the pearl buttons through their holes. (Have you ever buttoned the
gloves of a handsome woman? I have. And there is a subtile thrill
about the proceeding which I can not quite define. Perhaps it is the
nearness of physical beauty; perhaps it is the delicate scent of
flowers; perhaps it is the touch of the cool, firm flesh; perhaps it
is just romance.) The gaze which she bent upon his dark head was
emotional; yet there was not the slightest tremor of arm or fingers.
It is possible that she desired him to observe the steadiness of her
nerves. "What did you mean?" he asked.

"What did I mean?"--vaguely. Her thought had been elsewhere.

"By that supposition."

"Oh! I mean that my position, had I married you, would have been
rather anomalous to-day." She extended the other arm. "You are in
love."

"In love?" He looked up quickly.

"Decidedly; and I had always doubted your capacity for that
sentiment."

"And pray tell me, with whom am I in love?"

"Come, Count, you and I know each other too well to waste time in
beating about the bushes. I do not blame you for loving her; only, I
say, it must not be."

"Must not be?" The count's voice rose a key.

"Yes, must not be. You must give them up--the idea and the girl.
What! You, who contrive the father's dishonor, would aspire to the
daughter's hand? It is not equable. Love her honorably, or not at
all. The course you are following is base and wholly unworthy of
you."

He dropped the arm abruptly and strode across the room, stopping by a
window. He did not wish her to see his face at that particular
instant. Some men would have demanded indignantly to know how she had
learned these things; not so the count.

"There is time to retrieve. Go to the colonel frankly, pay his debts
out of your own pockets, then tell the girl that you love her. Before
you tell her, her father will have acquainted her with his sin and
your generosity. She will marry you out of gratitude."

Karloff spun on his heels. His expression was wholly new. His eyes
were burning; he stretched and crumpled his gloves.

"Yes, you are right, you are right! I have been trying to convince
myself that I was a machine where the father was concerned and wholly
a man in regard to the girl. You have put it before me in a bold
manner. Good God, yes! I find that I am wholly a man. How smoothly
all this would have gone to the end had she not crossed my path! I
_am_ base, I, who have always considered myself an honorable
man. And now it is too late, too late!"

"Too late? What do you mean? Have you dared to ask her to be your
wife?" Had Karloff held her arm at this moment, he would have
comprehended many things.

"No, no! My word has gone forth to my government; there is a wall
behind me, and I can not go back. To stop means worse than death. My
property will be confiscated and my name obliterated, my body rot
slowly in the frozen north. Oh, I know my country; one does not gain
her gratitude by failure. I must have those plans, and nowhere could
I obtain such perfect ones."

"Then you will give her up?" There was a broken note.

The count smiled. To her it was a smile scarce less than a snarl.

"Give her up? Yes, as a mother gives up her child, as a lioness her
cub. She _has_ refused me, but nevertheless she shall be my
wife. Oh, I am well-versed in human nature. She loves her father, and
I know what sacrifices she would make to save his honor. To-night!--"
But his lips suddenly closed.

"Well, to-night? Why do you not go on?" Mrs. Chadwick was pale. Her
gloved hands were clenched. A spasm of some sort seemed to hold her
in its shaking grasp.

"Nothing, nothing! In heaven's name, why have you stirred me so?" he
cried.

"Supposing, after all, I loved you?"

He retreated. "Madam, your suppositions are becoming intolerable and
impossible."

"Nothing is impossible. Supposing I loved you as violently and
passionately as you love this girl?"

"Madam,"--hastily and with gentleness, "do not say anything which may
cause me to blush for you; say nothing you may regret to-morrow."

"I am a woman of circumspection. My suppositions are merely
argumentative. Do you realize, Count, that I could force you to marry
me?"

Karloff's astonishment could not be equaled. "Force me to marry you?"

"Is the thought so distasteful, then?"

"You are mad to-night!"

"Not so. In whatever manner you have succeeded in this country, your
debt of gratitude is owing to me. I do not recall this fact as a
reproach; I make the statement to bear me on in what I have to submit
to your discerning intelligence. I doubt if there is another woman,
here or abroad, who knows you so well as I. Your personal honor is
beyond impeachment, but Russia is making vast efforts to speckle it.
She will succeed. Yes, I could force you to marry me. With a word I
could tumble your house of cards. I am a worldly woman, and not
without wit and address. I possess every one of your letters, most of
all have I treasured the extravagant ones. To some you signed your
name. If you have kept mine, you will observe that my given name
might mean any one of a thousand women who are named 'Grace.' Shall
you marry me? Shall I tumble your house of cards? I could go to
Colonel Annesley and say to him that if he delivers these plans to
you, I shall denounce him to the secret service officers. I might
cause his utter financial ruin, but his name would descend to his
daughter untarnished."

"You would not dare!" the count interrupted.

"What? And you know me so well? I have not given you my word to
reveal nothing. You confided in my rare quality of silence; you
confided in me because you had proved me. Man is not infallible, even
when he is named Karloff." She lifted from a vase her flowers, from
which she shook the water. "Laws have been passed or annulled; laws
have died at the executive desk. Who told you that this was to be, or
that, long before it came to pass? In all the successful intrigues of
Russia in this country, whom have you to thank? Me. Ordinarily a
woman does not do these things as a pastime. There must be some
strong motive behind. You asked me why I have stirred you so. Perhaps
it is because I am neither two-and-twenty nor you two-score. It is
these little barbs that remain in a woman's heart. Well, I do not
love you well enough to marry you, but I love you too well to permit
you to marry Miss Annesley."

"That has the sound of war. I _did_ love you that night,"--not
without a certain nobility.

"How easily you say 'that night'! Surely there was wisdom in that
smile of mine. And I nearly tumbled into the pit! I must have looked
exceedingly well... _that night!_"--drily.

"You are very bitter to-night. Had you taken me at my word, I never
should have looked at Miss Annesley. And had I ceased to love you,
not even you would have known it."

"Is it possible?"--ironically.

"It is. I have too much pride to permit a woman to see that I have
made a mistake."

"Then you consider in the present instance that you have not made a
mistake? You are frank."

"At least I have not made a mistake which I can not rectify. Madam,
let us not be enemies. As you say, I owe you too much. What is it you
desire?"--with forced amiability.

"Deprive Colonel Annesley of his honor, that, as you say, is
inevitable; but I love that girl as I would a child of my own, and I
will not see her caught in a net of this sort, or wedded to a man
whose government robs him of his manhood and individuality."

"Do not forget that I hold my country first and foremost,"--proudly.

"Love has no country, nor laws, nor galling chains of incertitude.
Love is magnificent only in that it gives all without question. You
love this girl with reservations. You shall not have her. You shall
not have even me, who love you after a fashion, for I could never
look upon you as a husband; in my eyes you would always be an
accomplice."

"It is war, then?"--curtly.

"War? Oh, no; we merely sever our diplomatic relations," she purred.

"Madam, listen to me. I shall make one more attempt to win this girl
honorably. For you are right: love to be love must be magnificent. If
she accepts me, for her sake I will become an outcast, a man without
a country. If she refuses me, I shall go on to the end. Speak to the
colonel, Madam; it is too late. Like myself, he has gone too far. Why
did you open the way for me as you did? I should have been satisfied
with a discontented clerk. You threw this girl across my path,
indirectly, it is true; but nevertheless the fault is yours."

"I recognize it. At that time I did not realize how much you were to
me."

"You are a strange woman. I do not understand you."

"Incompatibility. Come, the carriage is waiting. Let us be gone."

"You have spoilt the evening for me," said the count, as he threw her
cloak across her shoulders.

"On the contrary, I have added a peculiar zest. Now, let us go and
appear before the world, and smile, and laugh, and eat, and gossip.
Let the heart throb with a dull pain, if it will; the mask is ours to
do with as we may."

They were, in my opinion, two very unusual persons.

[Illustration: "Lay the rose on the table"--Act II.]




XVII

DINNER IS SERVED


"Ha!"

Monsieur Pierre, having uttered this ejaculation, stepped back and
rested his fat hands on his fat hips. As he surveyed the impromptu
butler, a shade of perplexity spread over his oily face. He smoothed
his imperial and frowned. This groom certainly _looked_ right,
but there was something lacking in his make-up, that indefinable
something which is always found in the true servant--servility. There
was no humility here, no hypocritical meekness, no suavity; there was
nothing smug or self-satisfied. In truth, there was something grimly
earnest, which was not to be understood readily. Monsieur Pierre,
having always busied himself with soups and curries and roasts and
sauces, was not a profound analyst; yet his instinctive shrewdness at
once told him that this fellow was no servant, nor could he ever be
made into one. Though voluble enough in his kitchen, Monsieur Pierre
lacked expression when confronted by any problem outside of it. Here
was the regulation swallow-tail coat and trousers of green, the
striped red vest, and the polished brass buttons; but the man inside
was too much for him.

"_Diable_! you _luke_ right. But, no, I can not explain.
Eet ees on zee tongue, but eet rayfuse. Ha! I haf eet! You lack vot
zay call zee real. You make me t'ink uf zee sairvant on zee stage,
somet'ing bettair off; eh?" This was as near as monsieur ever got to
the truth of things.

During this speculative inventory, Warburton's face was gravely set;
indeed, it pictured his exact feelings. He _was_ grave. He even
wanted Pierre's approval. He was about to pass through a very trying
ordeal; he might not even pass through it. There was no deceiving his
colonel's eyes, hang him! Whatever had induced fate to force this old
Argus-eyed soldier upon the scene? He glanced into the kitchen
mirror. He instantly saw the salient flaw in his dress. It was the
cravat. Tie it as he would, it never approached the likeness of the
conventional cravat of the waiter. It still remained a polished
cravat, a worldly cravat, the cravat seen in ball-rooms, drawing-
rooms, in the theater stalls and boxes, anywhere but in the servants'
hall. Oh, for the ready-made cravat that hitched to the collar-
button! And then there was that servant's low turned-down collar,
glossy as celluloid. He felt as diffident in his bare throat as a
debutante feels in her first decollete ball-gown, not very well
covered up, as it were. And, heaven and earth, how appallingly large
his hands had grown, how clumsy his feet! Would the colonel expose
him? Would he keep silent? This remained to be found out: wherein lay
the terror of suspense.

"Remem_bair_," went on Monsieur Pierre, after a pause, feeling
that he had a duty to fulfil and a responsibility to shift to other
shoulders than his own, "remem_bair_, eef you spill zee soup, I
keel you. You carry zee tureen in, zen you deesh out zee soup, and
sairve. Zee oystaires should be on zee table t'ree minutes before zee
guests haf arrive'. Now, can you make zee American cocktail?"

"I can,"--with a ghost of a smile.

"Make heem,"--with a pompous wave of the hand toward the favorite
ingredients.

"What kind?"

"Vot kind! Eez zare more cocktails, zen?"

"Only two that are proper, the manhattan and the martini."

"Make zee martini; I know heem."

"But cocktails ought not be mixed before serving."

"I say, make zee one cocktail,"--coldly and skeptically. "I test
heem."

Warburton made one. Monsieur sipped it slowly, making a wry face,
for, true Gaul that he was, only two kinds of stimulants appealed to
his palate, liqueurs and wines. He found it as good as any he had
ever tasted.

"Ver' good,"--softening. "Zare ees, zen, one t'ing zat all zee
Americans can make, zee cocktail? I am educate'; I learn. Now leaf me
till eight. Keep zee collect head;"--and Monsieur Pierre turned his
attention to his partridges.

James went out of doors to get a breath of fresh air and to collect
his thoughts, which were wool-gathering, whatever that may mean. They
needed collecting, these thoughts of his, and labeling, for they were
at all points of the compass, and he was at a loss upon which to draw
for support. Here he was, in a devil of a fix, and no possible way of
escaping except by absolutely bolting; and he vowed that he wouldn't
bolt, not if he stood the chance of being exposed fifty times over.
He had danced; he was going to pay the fiddler like a man. He had
never run away from anything, and he wasn't going to begin now.

At the worst, they could only laugh at him; but his secret would be
his no longer. Ass that he had been! How to tell this girl that he
loved her? How to appear to her as his natural self? What a chance he
had wilfully thrown away! He might have been a guest to-night; he
might have sat next to her, turned the pages of her music, and
perhaps sighed love in her ear, all of which would have been very
proper and conventional. Ah, if he only knew what was going on behind
those Mediterranean eyes of hers, those heavenly sapphires. Had she
any suspicion? No, it could not be possible; she had humiliated him
too often, to suspect the imposture. Alackaday!

Had any one else applied the disreputable terms he applied to himself
there would have been a battle royal. When he became out of breath,
he reentered the house to have a final look at the table before the
ordeal began.

Covers had been laid for twelve; immaculate linen, beautiful silver,
and sparkling cut-glass. He wondered how much the girl was worth, and
thought of his own miserable forty-five hundred the year. True, his
capital could at any time be converted into cash, some seventy-five
thousand, but it would be no longer the goose with the golden egg. A
great bowl of roses stood on a glass center-piece. As he leaned
toward them to inhale their perfume he heard a sound. He turned.

She stood framed in a doorway, a picture such as artists conjure up
to fit in sunlit corners of gloomy studios: beauty, youth, radiance,
luster, happiness. To his ardent eyes she was supremely beautiful.
How wildly his heart beat! This was the first time he had seen her in
all her glory. His emotion was so strong that he did not observe that
she was biting her nether lip.

"Is everything well, James?" she asked, meaning the possibilities of
service and not the cardiac intranquillity of the servant.

"Very well, Miss Annesley,"--with a sudden bold scrutiny.

Whatever it was she saw in his eyes it had the effect of making hers
turn aside. To bridge the awkwardness of the moment, he rearranged a
napkin; and she remarked his hands. They were tanned, but they were
elegantly shaped and scrupulously well taken care of--the hands of a
gentleman born, of an aristocrat. He could feel her gaze penetrate
like acid. He grew visibly nervous.

"You haven't the hand of a servant, James,"--quietly.

He started, and knocked a fork to the floor.

"They are too clumsy," she went on maliciously.

"I am not a butler, Miss; I am a groom. I promise to do the very best
I can." Wrath mingled with the shame on his face.

"A man who can do what you did this morning ought not to be afraid of
a dinner-table."

"There is some difference between a dinner-table and a horse, Miss."
He stooped to recover the fork while she touched her lips with her
handkerchief. The situation was becoming unendurable. He knew that,
for some reason, she was quietly laughing at him.

"Never put back on the table a fork or piece of silver that has
fallen to the floor," she advised. "Procure a clean one."

"Yes, Miss." Why, in heaven's name, didn't she go and leave him in
peace?

"And be very careful not to spill a drop of the burgundy. It is
seventy-eight, and a particular favorite of my father's."

Seventy-eight! As if he hadn't had many a bottle of that superb
vintage during the past ten months! The glands in his teeth opened at
the memory of that taste.

"James, we have been in the habit of paying off the servants on this
day of the month. Payday comes especially happy this time. It will
put good feeling into all, and make the service vastly more
expeditious."

She counted out four ten-dollar notes from a roll in her hand and
signified him to approach. He took the money, coolly counted it, and
put it in his vest-pocket.

"Thank you, Miss."

I do not say that she looked disappointed, but I assert that she was
slightly disconcerted. She never knew the effort he had put forth to
subdue the desire to tear the money into shreds, throw it at her feet
and leave the house.

"When the gentlemen wish for cigars or cigarettes, you will find them
in the usual place, the tower drawer in the sideboard." With a swish
she was gone.

He took the money out and studied it. No, he wouldn't tear it up;
rather he would put it among his keepsakes.

I shall leave Mr. Robert, or M'sieu Zhames, to recover his
tranquillity, and describe to you the character and quality of the
guests. There was the affable military attache of the British
embassy, there was a celebrated American countess, a famous dramatist
and his musical wife, Warburton's late commanding colonel, Mrs.
Chadwick, Count Karloff, one of the notable grand opera prima-donnas,
who would not sing in opera till February, a cabinet officer and his
wife, Colonel Annesley and his daughter. You will note the
cosmopolitan character of these distinguished persons. Perhaps in no
other city in America could they be brought together at an informal
dinner such as this one was. There was no question of precedence or
any such nonsense. Everybody knew everybody else, with one exception.
Colonel Raleigh was a comparative stranger. But he was a likable old
fellow, full of stories of the wild, free West, an excellent listener
besides, who always stopped a goodly distance on the right side of
what is known in polite circles as the bore's dead-line. Warburton
held for him a deep affection, martinet though he was, for he was
singularly just and merciful.

They had either drunk the cocktail or had set it aside untouched, and
had emptied the oyster shells, when the ordeal of the soup began.
Very few of those seated gave any attention to my butler. The first
thing he did was to drop the silver ladle. Only the girl saw this
mishap. She laughed; and Raleigh believed that he had told his story
in an exceptionally taking manner. My butler quietly procured another
ladle, and proceeded coolly enough. I must confess, however, that his
coolness was the result of a physical effort. The soup quivered and
trembled outrageously, and more than once he felt the heat of the
liquid on his thumb. This moment his face was pale, that moment it
was red. But, as I remarked, few observed him. Why should they?
Everybody had something to say to everybody else; and a butler was
only a machine anyway. Yet, three persons occasionally looked in his
direction: his late colonel, Mrs. Chadwick, and the girl; each from a
different angle of vision. There was a scowl on the colonel's face,
puzzlement on Mrs. Chadwick's, and I don't know what the girl's
represented, not having been there with my discerning eyes.

Once the American countess raised her lorgnette and murmured: "What a
handsome butler!"

Karloff, who sat next to her, twisted his mustache and shrugged. He
had seen handsome peasants before. They did not interest him. He
glanced across the table at the girl, and was much annoyed that she,
too, was gazing at the butler, who had successfully completed the
distribution of the soup and who now stood with folded arms by the
sideboard. (How I should have liked to see him!)

When the butler took away the soup-plates, Colonel Raleigh turned to
his host.

"George, where the deuce did you pick up that butler?"

Annesley looked vaguely across the table at his old comrade. He had
been far away in thought. He had eaten nothing.

"What?" he asked.

"I asked you where the deuce you got that butler of yours."

"Oh, Betty found him somewhere. Our own butler is away on a vacation.
I had not noticed him. Why?"

"Well, if he doesn't look like a cub lieutenant of mine, I was born
without recollection of faces."

"An orderly of yours, a lieutenant, did you say?" asked Betty, with
smoldering fires in her eyes.

"Yes."

"That is strange," she mused.

"Yes; very strange. He was a daredevil, if there ever was one."

"Ah!"

"Yes; best bump of location in the regiment, and the steadiest
nerve,"--dropping his voice.

The girl leaned on her lovely arms and observed him interestedly.

"A whole company got lost in a snowstorm one winter. You know that on
the prairie a snowstorm means that only a compass can tell you where
you are; and there wasn't one in the troop,--a bad piece of
carelessness on the captain's part. Well, this cub said _he'd_
find the way back, and the captain wisely let him take the boys in
hand."

"Go on," said the girl.

"Interested, eh?"

"I am a soldier's daughter, and I love the recital of brave deeds."

"Well, he did it. Four hours later they were being thawed out in the
barracks kitchens. Another hour and not one of them would have lived
to tell the tale. The whisky they poured into my cub--"

"Did he drink?" she interrupted.

"Drink? Why, the next day he was going to lick the men who had poured
the stuff down his throat. A toddy once in a while; that was all he
ever took. And how he loved a fight! He had the tenacity of a
bulldog; once he set his mind on getting something, he never let up
till he got it."

The girl trifled thoughtfully with a rose.

"Was he ever in any Indian fights?" she asked, casually.

"Only scraps and the like. He went into the reservation alone one day
and arrested a chief who had murdered a sheep-herder. It was a
volunteer job, and nine men out of ten would never have left the
reservation alive. He was certainly a cool hand."

"I dare say,"--smiling. She wanted to ask him if he had ever been
hurt, this daredevil of a lieutenant, but she could not bring the
question to her lips. "What did you say his name was?"--innocently.

"Warburton, Robert Warburton."

Here the butler came in with the birds. The girl's eyes followed him,
hither and thither, her lips hidden behind the rose.




XVIII

CAUGHT!


Karloff came around to music. The dramatist's wife should play
Tosti's _Ave Maria_, Miss Annesley should play the obligato on
the violin and the prima-donna should sing; but just at present the
dramatist should tell them all about his new military play which was
to be produced in December.

"Count, I beg to decline," laughed the dramatist. "I should hardly
dare to tell my plot before two such military experts as we have
here. I should be told to write the play all over again, and now it
is too late."

Whenever Betty's glance fell on her father's face, the gladness in
her own was somewhat dimmed. What was making that loved face so care-
worn, the mind so listless, the attitude so weary? But she was young;
the spirits of youth never flow long in one direction. The repartee,
brilliant and at the same time with every sting withdrawn, flashed up
and down the table like so many fireflies on a wet lawn in July, and
drew her irresistibly.

As the courses came and passed, so the conversation became less and
less general; and by the time the ices were served the colonel had
engaged his host, and the others divided into twos. Then coffee,
liqueurs and cigars, when the ladies rose and trailed into the little
Turkish room, where the "distinguished-looking butler" supplied them
with the amber juice.

A dinner is a function where everybody talks and nobody eats. Some
have eaten before they come, some wish they had, and others dare not
eat for fear of losing some of the gossip. I may be wrong, but I
believe that half of these listless appetites are due to the natural
confusion of forks.

After the liqueurs my butler concluded that his labor was done, and
he offered up a short prayer of thankfulness and relief. Heavens,
what mad, fantastic impulses had seized him while he was passing the
soup! Supposing he _had_ spilled the hot liquid down Karloff's
back, or poured out a glass of burgundy for himself and drained it
before them all, or slapped his late colonel on the back and asked
him the state of his liver? It was maddening, and he marveled at his
escape. There hadn't been a real mishap. The colonel had only scowled
at him; he was safe. He passed secretly from the house and hung
around the bow-window which let out on the low balcony. The window
was open, and occasionally he could hear a voice from beyond the
room, which was dark.

It was one of those nights, those mild November nights, to which the
novelists of the old regime used to devote a whole page; the silvery
pallor on the landscape, the moon-mists, the round, white, inevitable
moon, the stirring breezes, the murmur of the few remaining leaves,
and all that. But these busy days we have not the time to read nor
the inclination to describe.

Suddenly upon the stillness of the night the splendor of a human
voice broke forth; the prima-donna was trying her voice. A violin
wailed a note. A hand ran up and down the keys of the piano.
Warburton held his breath and waited. He had heard Tosti's _Ave
Maria_ many times, but he never will forget the manner in which it
was sung that night. The songstress was care-free and among persons
she knew and liked, and she put her soul into that magnificent and
mysterious throat of hers, And throbbing all through the song was the
vibrant, loving voice of the violin. And when the human tones died
away and the instruments ceased to speak, Warburton felt himself
swallowing rapidly. Then came Schumann's _Traumerei_ on the
strings, Handel's _Largo_, Grieg's _Papillon_, and a _ballade_ by
Chaminade. Then again sang the prima-donna; old folksy songs,
sketches from the operas grand and light, _Faust_, _The Barber of
Seville_, _La Fille de Madame Angot_. In all his days Warburton had
never heard such music. Doubtless he _had_--even better; only at
this period he was in love. The imagination of love's young dream is
the most stretchable thing I know of. Seriously, however, he was a
very good judge of music, and I am convinced that what he heard
was out of the ordinary.

But I must guide my story into the channel proper.

During the music Karloff and Colonel Annesley drifted into the
latter's study. What passed between them I gathered from bits
recently dropped by Warburton.

"Good God, Karloff, what a net you have sprung about me!" said the
colonel, despairingly.

"My dear Colonel, you have only to step out of it. It is the eleventh
hour; it is not too late." But Karloff watched the colonel eagerly.

"How in God's name can I step out of it?"

"Simply reimburse me for that twenty thousand I advanced to you in
good faith, and nothing more need be said." The count's Slavonic eyes
were half-lidded.

"To give you back that amount will leave me a beggar, an absolute
beggar, without a roof to shelter me. I am too old for the service,
and besides, I am physically incapacitated. If you should force me, I
could not meet my note save by selling the house my child was born
in. Have you discounted it?"

"No. Why should I present it at the bank? It does not mature till
next Monday, and I am in no need of money."

"What a wretch I am!"

Karloff raised his shoulders resignedly.

"My daughter!"

"Or my ducats," whimsically quoted the count. "Come, Colonel; do not
waste time in useless retrospection. He stumbles who looks back. I
have been thinking of your daughter. I love her, deeply, eternally."

"You love her?"

"Yes. I love her because she appeals to all that is young and good in
me; because she represents the highest type of womanhood. With her as
my wife, why, I should be willing to renounce my country, and your
indebtedness would be crossed out of existence with one stroke of the
pen."

The colonel's haggard face grew light with sudden hopefulness.

"I have been," the count went on, studying the ash of his cigar,
"till this night what the world and my own conscience consider an
honorable man. I have never wronged a man or woman personally. What I
have done on the order of duty does not agitate my conscience. I am
simply a machine. The moral responsibility rests with my czar. When I
saw your daughter, I deeply regretted that you were her father."

The colonel grew rigid in his chair.

"Do not misunderstand me. Before I saw her, you were but the key to
what I desired. As her father the matter took on a personal side. I
could not very conscientiously make love to your daughter and at the
same time--" Karloff left the sentence incomplete.

"And Betty?"--in half a whisper.

"Has refused me,"--quietly. "But I have not given her up; no, I have
not given her up."

"What do you mean to do?"

Karloff got up and walked about the room. "Make her my wife,"--
simply. He stooped and studied the titles of some of the books in the
cases. He turned to find that the colonel had risen and was facing
him with flaming eyes.

"I demand to know how you intend to accomplish this end," the colonel
said. "My daughter shall not be dragged into this trap."

"To-morrow night I will explain everything; to-night, nothing,"--
imperturbably.

"Karloff, to-night I stand a ruined and dishonored man. My head, once
held so proudly before my fellow-men, is bowed with shame. The
country I have fought and bled for I have in part betrayed. But not
for my gain, not for my gain. No, no! Thank God that I can say that!
Personal greed has not tainted me. Alone, I should have gone serenely
into some poor house and eked out an existence on my half-pay. But
this child of mine, whom I love doubly, for her mother's sake and her
own,--I would gladly cut off both arms to spare her a single pain, to
keep her in the luxury which she still believes rightfully to be
hers. When the fever of gaming possessed me, I should have told her.
I did not; therein lies my mistake, the mistake which has brought me
to this horrible end. Virginius sacrificed his child to save her; I
will sacrifice my honor to save mine from poverty. Force her to wed a
man she does not love? No. To-morrow night we shall complete this
disgraceful bargain. The plans are all finished but one. Now leave
me; I wish to be alone."

"Sir, it is my deep regret--"

"Go; there is nothing more to be said."

Karloff withdrew. He went soberly. There was nothing sneering nor
contemptuous in his attitude. Indeed, there was a frown of pity on
his face. He recognized that circumstances had dragged down a noble
man; that chance had tricked him of his honor. How he hated his own
evil plan! He squared his shoulders, determined once more to put it
to the touch to win or lose it all.

He found her at the bow-window, staring up at the moon. As I
remarked, this room was dark, and she did not instantly recognize
him.

"I am moon-gazing," she said.

"Let me sigh for it with you. Perhaps together we may bring it down."
There was something very pleasing in the quality of his tone.

"Ah, it is you, Count? I could not see. But let us not sigh for the
moon; it would be useless. Does any one get his own wish-moon? Does
it not always hang so high, so far away?"

"The music has affected you?"

"As it always does. When I hear a voice like madam's, I grow sad, and
a pity for the great world surges over me."

"Pity is the invisible embrace which enfolds all animate things.
There is pity for the wretched, for the fool, for the innocent knave,
for those who are criminals by their own folly; pity for those who
love without reward; pity that embraces ... even me."

Silence.

"Has it ever occurred to you that there are two beings in each of us;
that between these two there is a continual conflict, and that the
victor finally prints the victory on the face? For what lines and
haggards a man's face but the victory of the evil that is in him? For
what makes the aged ruddy and smooth of face and clear of eye but the
victory of the good that is in him? It is so. I still love you; I
still have the courage to ask you to be my wife. Shall there be faces
haggard or ruddy, lined or smooth?"

She stepped inside. She did not comprehend all he said, and his face
was in the shadow--that is to say, unreadable.

"I am sorry, very, very sorry."

"How easily you say that!"

"No, not easily; if only you knew how hard it comes, for I know that
it inflicts a hurt,"--gently. "Ah, Count, why indeed do I not love
you?"--impulsively, for at that time she held him in genuine regard.
"You represent all that a woman could desire in a man."

"You could learn,"--with an eager step toward her.

"You do not believe that; you know that you do not. Love has nothing
to learn; the heart speaks, and that is all. My heart does not speak
when I see you, and I shall never marry a man to whom it does not.
You ask for something which I can not give, and each time you ask you
only add to the pain."

"This is finality?"

"It is."

"Eh, well; then I must continue on to the end."

She interpreted this as a plaint of his coming loneliness.

"Here!" she said. She held in her hands two red roses. She thrust one
toward him. "That is all I may give you."

For a moment he hesitated. There were thorns, invisible and stinging.

"Take it!"

He accepted it, kissed it gravely, and hid it.

"This is the bitterest moment in my life, and doubly bitter because I
love you."

When the portiere fell behind him, she locked her hands, grieving
that all she could give him was an ephemeral flower. How many men had
turned from her in this wise, even as she began to depend upon them
for their friendships! The dark room oppressed her and she stepped
out once more into the silver of moonshine. Have you ever beheld a
lovely woman fondle a lovely rose? She drew it, pendent on its
slender stem, slowly across her lips, her eyes shining mistily with
waking dreams. She breathed in the perfume, then cupped the flower in
the palm of her hand and pressed it again and again to her lips. A
long white arm stretched outward and upward toward the moon, and when
it withdrew the hand was empty.

Warburton, hidden behind the vines, waited until she was gone, and
then hunted in the grass for the precious flower. On his hands and
knees he groped. The dew did not matter. And when at last he found
it, not all the treasures of the fabled Ophir would have tempted him
to part with it. It would be a souvenir for his later days.

As he rose from his knees he was confronted by a broad-shouldered,
elderly man in evening clothes. The end of a cigar burned brightly
between his teeth.

"I'll take that flower, young man, if you please."

Warburton's surprise was too great for sudden recovery.

"It is mine, Colonel," he stammered.

The colonel filliped away his cigar and caught my butler roughly by
the arm.

"Warburton, what the devil does this mean--a lieutenant of mine
peddling soup around a gentleman's table?"




XIX

"OH, MISTER BUTLER!"


Warburton had never lacked that rare and peculiar gift of
immediately adapting himself to circumstances. To lie now would be
folly, worse than useless. He had addressed this man at his side by
his military title. He stood committed. He saw that he must throw
himself wholly on the colonel's mercy and his sense of the humorous.
He pointed toward the stables and drew the colonel after him; but the
colonel held back.

"That rose first; I insist upon having that rose till you have given
me a satisfactory account of yourself."

Warburton reluctantly surrendered his treasure. Force of habit is a
peculiar one. The colonel had no real authority to demand the rose;
but Warburton would no more have thought of disobeying than of
running away.

"You will give it back to me?"

"That remains to be seen. Go on; I am ready to follow you. And I do
not want any dragging story, either." The colonel spoke impatiently.

Warburton led him into his room and turned on the light. The colonel
seated himself on the edge of the cot and lighted a fresh cigar.

"Well, sir, out with it. I am waiting."

Warburton took several turns about the room. "I don't know how the
deuce to begin, Colonel. It began with a joke that turned out wrong."

"Indeed?"--sarcastically. "Let me hear about this joke."

M'sieu Zhames dallied no longer, but plunged boldly into his
narrative. Sometimes the colonel stared at him as if he beheld a
species of lunatic absolutely new to him, sometimes he laughed
silently, sometimes he frowned.

"That's all," said Zhames; and he stood watching the colonel with
dread in his eyes.

"Well, of all the damn fools!"

"Sir?"

"Of all the jackasses!"

Warburton bit his lip angrily.

The colonel swung the rose to and fro. "Yes, sir, a damn fool!"

"I dare say that I am, sir. But I have gone too far to back out now.
Will you give me back that rose, Colonel?"

"What do you mean by her?"--coldly.

"I love her with all my heart,"--hotly. "I want her for my comrade,
my wife, my companion, my partner in all I have or do. I love her,
and I don't care a hang who knows it."

"Not so loud, my friend; not so loud."

"Oh, I do not care who hears,"--discouragedly.

"This beats the very devil! You've got me all balled up. Is Betty
Annesley a girl of the kind we read about in the papers as eloping
with her groom? What earthly chance had you in this guise, I should
like to know?"

"I only wanted to be near her; I did not look ahead."

"Well, I should say not! How long were you hidden behind that
trellis?"

"A year, so it seemed to me."

"Any lunatics among your ancestors?"

Warburton shook his head, smiling wanly.

"I can't make it out," declared the colonel. "A graduate of West
Point, the fop of Troop A, the hero of a hundred ball-rooms,
disguised as a hostler and serving soup!"

"Always keep the motive in mind, Colonel; you were young yourself
once."

The colonel thought of the girl's mother. Yes, he had been young
once, but not quite so young as this cub of his.

"What chance do you suppose you have against the handsome Russian?"

"She has rejected him,"--thoughtlessly.

"Ha!"--frowning; "so you were eavesdropping?"

"Wait a moment, Colonel. You know that I am very fond of music. I was
listening to the music. It had ceased, and I was waiting for it to
begin again, when I heard voices."

"Why did you not leave then?"

"And be observed? I dared not."

The colonel chewed the end of his cigar in silence.

"And now may I have that rose, sir?"--quietly.

The colonel observed him warily. He knew that quiet tone. It said
that if he refused to give up the rose he would have to fight for it,
and probably get licked into the bargain.

"I've a notion you might attempt to take it by force in case I
refused."

"I surrendered it peacefully enough, sir."

"So you did. Here." The colonel tossed the flower across the room and
Warburton caught it.

"I should like to know, sir, if you are going to expose me. It's no
more than I deserve."

The colonel studied the lithographs on the walls. "Your selection?"--
with a wave of the hand.

"No, sir. I should like to know what you are going to do. It would
relieve my mind. As a matter of fact, I confess that I am growing
weary of the mask." Warburton waited.

"You make a very respectable butler, though,"--musingly.

"Shall you expose me, sir?"--persistently.

"No, lad. I should not want it to get about that a former officer of
mine could possibly make such an ass of himself. You have slept all
night in jail, you have groomed horses, you have worn a livery which
no gentleman with any self-respect would wear, and all to no purpose
whatever. Why, in the name of the infernal regions, didn't you meet
her in a formal way? There would have been plenty of opportunities."

Warburton shrugged; so did the colonel, who stood up and shook the
wrinkles from his trousers.

"Shall you be long in Washington, sir?" asked Warburton, politely.

"In a hurry to get rid of me, eh?"--with a grim smile. "Well, perhaps
in a few days."

"Good night."

The colonel stopped at the threshold, and his face melted suddenly
into a warm, humorous smile. He stretched out a hand which Warburton
grasped most gratefully. His colonel had been playing with him.

"Come back to the Army, lad; the East is no place for a man of your
kidney. Scrape up a commission, and I'll see to it that you get back
into the regiment. Life is real out in the great West. People smile
too much here; they don't laugh often enough. Smiles have a hundred
meanings, laughter but one. Smiles are the hiding places for lies,
and sneers, and mockeries, and scandals. Come back to the West; we
all want you, the service and I. When I saw you this afternoon I knew
you instantly, only I was worried as to what devilment you were up
to. Win this girl, if you can; she's worth any kind of struggle, God
bless her! Win her and bring her out West, too."

Warburton wrung the hand in his till the old fellow signified that
his fingers were beginning to ache.

"Do you suppose she suspects anything?" ventured Warburton.

"No. She may be a trifle puzzled, though. I saw her watching your
hands at the table. She has eyes and can readily see that such hands
as yours were never made to carry soup-plates. For the life of me, I
had a time of it, swallowing my laughter. I longed for a vacant lot
to yell in. It would have been a positive relief. The fop of Troop A
peddling soup! Oh, I shall have to tell the boys. You used more pipe-
clay than any other man in the regiment. Don't scowl. Never mind;
you've had your joke; I must have mine. Don't let that Russian fellow
get the inside track. Keep her on American soil. I like him and I
don't like him; and for all your tomfoolery and mischief, there is
good stuff in you--stuff that any woman might be proud of. If you
hadn't adopted this disguise, I could have helped you out a bit by
cracking up some of your exploits. Well, they will be inquiring for
me. Good night and good luck. If you should need me, a note will find
me at the Army and Navy Club." And the genial old warrior, shaking
with silent laughter, went back to the house.

Warburton remained standing. He was lost in a dream. All at once he
pressed the rose to his lips and kissed it shamelessly, kissed it
uncountable times. Two or three leaves, not withstanding this violent
treatment, fluttered to the floor. He picked them up: any one of
those velvet leaves might have been the recipient of _her_
kisses, the rosary of love. He was in love, such a love that comes
but once to any man, not passing, uncertain, but lasting. He knew
that it was all useless. He had digged with his own hands the abyss
between himself and this girl. But there was a secret gladness: to
love was something. (For my part, I believe that the glory lies, not
in being loved, but in loving.)

I do not know how long he stood there, but it must have been at least
ten minutes. Then the door opened, and Monsieur Pierre lurched or
rolled (I can't quite explain or describe the method of his entrance)
into the room, his face red with anger, and a million thousand
thunders on the tip of his Gallic tongue.

"So! You haf leaf _me_ to clear zee table, eh? Not by a damn!
_I_, clear zee table? _I?_ I t'ink not. I _cook_, nozzing else. To
zee dining-room, or I haf you discharge'!"

"All right, Peter, old boy!" cried Warburton, the gloom lifting from
his face. This Pierre was a very funny fellow.

"Pe_taire!_ You haf zee insolence to call me Pe_taire?_
Why, I haf you keeked out in zee morning, lackey!"

"Cook!"--mockingly.

Pierre was literally dumfounded. Such disrespect he had never before
witnessed. It was frightful. He opened his mouth to issue a volley of
French oaths, when Zhames's hand stopped him.

"Look here, Peter, you broil your partridges and flavor your soups,
but keep out of the stables, or, in your own words, I _keel_ you
or _keek_ you out. You tell the scullery maid to clear off the
table. I'm off duty for the rest of the night. Now, then, _allons!
Marche!"_

And M'sieu Zhames gently but firmly and steadily pushed the
scandalized Pierre out of the room and closed the door in his face. I
shan't repeat what Pierre said, much less what he thought.

Let me read a thought from the mind of each of my principals, the
final thought before retiring that night.

_Karloff_ (on leaving Mrs. Chadwick): Dishonor against dishonor;
so it must be. I can not live without that girl.

_Mrs. Chadwick:_ (when Karloff had gone); He has lost, but I
have not won.

_Annesley:_ So one step leads to another, and the labyrinth of
dishonor has no end.

_The Colonel:_ What the deuce will love put next into the young
mind?

_Pierre_ (to Celeste): I haf heem discharge'!

_Celeste_ (to Pierre): He ees handsome!

_Warburton_ (sighing in the _doloroso_): How I love her!

_The Girl_ (standing before her mirror and smiling happily): Oh,
Mister Butler! Why?




XX

THE EPISODE OF THE STOVE-PIPE


In the morning Monsieur Pierre faithfully reported to his mistress
the groom's extraordinary insolence and impudence of the night
before. The girl struggled with and conquered her desire to laugh;
for monsieur was somewhat grotesque in his rage.

"Frightful, Mademoiselle, most frightful! He call me Pe_taire_
most disrrrespectful way, and eject me from zee stables. I can not
call heem out; he ees a groom and knows nozzing uf zee _amende
honorable._"

Mademoiselle summoned M'sieu Zhames. She desired to make the comedy
complete in all its phases.

"James, whenever you are called upon to act in the capacity of
butler, you must clear the table after the guests leave it. This is
imperative. I do not wish the scullery girl to handle the porcelain
save in the tubs. Do you understand?"

"Yes, Miss. There were no orders to that effect last night, however."
He was angry.

Monsieur Pierre puffed up like the lady-frog in Aesop's fables,

"And listen, Pierre," she said, collapsing the bubble of the chef's
conceit, "you must give no orders to James. I will do that. I do not
wish any tale-bearing or quarreling among my servants. I insist upon
this. Observe me carefully, Pierre, and you, James."

James _did_ observe her carefully, so carefully, indeed, that
her gaze was forced to wander to the humiliated countenance of
Monsieur Pierre.

"James, you must not look at me like that. There is something in your
eyes; I can't explain what it is, but it somehow lacks the respect
due me." This command was spoken coldly and sharply.

"Respect?" He drew back a step. "I disrespectful to you, Miss
Annesley? Oh, you wrong me. There can not be any one more respectful
to you than I am." The sincerity of his tones could not be denied. In
fact, he was almost too sincere.

"Nevertheless, I wish you to regard what I have said. Now, you two
shake hands."

The groom and the chef shook hands. I am ashamed to say that James
squeezed Monsieur Pierre's flabby hand out of active service for
several hours that followed. Beads of agony sparkled on Monsieur
Pierre's expansive brow as he turned to enter the kitchen.

"Shall we ride to-day, Miss?" he asked, inwardly amused.

"No, _I_ shall not ride this morning,"--calmly.

James bowed meekly under the rebuke. What did he care? Did he not
possess a rose which had known the pressure of her lips, her warm,
red lips?

"You may go," she said.

James went. James whistled on the way, too.

Would that it had been my good fortune to have witnessed the episode
of that afternoon! My jehu, when he hears it related these days,
smiles a sickly grin. I do not believe that he ever laughed heartily
over it. At three o'clock, while Warburton was reading the morning
paper, interested especially in the Army news of the day, he heard
Pierre's voice wailing.

"What's the fat fool want now?" James grumbled to William.

"Oh, he's always yelling for help. They've coddled him so long in the
family that he acts like a ten-year-old kid. I stole a kiss from
Celeste one day, and I will be shot if he didn't start to blubber."

"You stole a kiss, eh?" said James, admiringly.

"Only just for the sport of making him crazy, that was all." But
William's red visage belied his indifferent tone. "You'd better go
and see what he wants. My hands are all harness grease."

Warburton concluded to follow William's advice. He flung down his
paper and strode out to the rear porch, where he saw Pierre
gesticulating wildly.

"What's the matter? What do you want?"--churlishly.

"Frightful! Zee stove-pipe ees vat you call _bust!_"

James laughed.

"I can not rrreach eet. I can not cook till eet ees fix'. You are
tall, eh?"--affably.

"All right; I'll help you fix it."

Grumbling, James went into the kitchen, mounted a chair, and began
banging away at the pipe, very much after the fashion of Bunner's
"Culpepper Ferguson." The pipe acted piggishly. James grew
determined. One end slipped in and then the other slipped out, half a
dozen times. James lost patience and became angry; and in his anger
he overreached himself. The chair slid back. He tried to balance
himself and, in the mad effort to maintain a perpendicular position,
made a frantic clutch at the pipe. Ruin and devastation! Down came
the pipe, and with it a peck of greasy soot.

Monsieur Pierre yelled with terror and despair. The pies on the rear
end of the stove were lost for ever. Mademoiselle Celeste screamed
with laughter, whether at the sight of the pies or M'sieu Zhames, is
more than I can say.

James rose to his feet, the cuss-words of a corporal rumbled behind
his lips. He sent an energetic kick toward Pierre, who succeeded in
eluding it.

Pierre's eyes were full of tears. What a kitchen! What a kitchen!
Soot, soot, everywhere, on the floor, on the tables, on the walls, in
the air!

"Zee pipe!" he burst forth; "zee pipe! You haf zee house full of
gas!"

James, blinking and sneezing, boiling with rage and chagrin,
remounted the chair and finally succeeded in joining the two lengths.
Nothing happened this time. But the door to the forward rooms opened,
and Miss Annesley looked in upon the scene.

"Merciful heavens!" she gasped, "what has happened?"

"Zee stove-pipe bust, Mees," explained Pierre.

The girl gave Warburton one look, balled her handkerchief against her
mouth, and fled. This didn't add to his amiability. He left the
kitchen in a downright savage mood. He had appeared before her
positively ridiculous, laughable. A woman never can love a man, nor
entertain tender regard for him at whom she has laughed: And the girl
had laughed, and doubtless was still laughing. (However, I do not
offer his opinion as infallible.)

He stood in the roadway, looking around for some inanimate thing upon
which he might vent his anger, when the sound of hoofs coming toward
him distracted him. He glanced over his shoulder... and his knees all
but gave way under him. Caught! The rider was none other than his
sister Nancy! It was all over now, for a certainty. He knew it; he
had about one minute to live. She was too near, so he dared not fly.
Then a brilliant inspiration came to him. He quickly passed his hand
over his face. The disguise was complete. Vidocq's wonderful eye
could not have penetrated to the flesh.

"James!" Miss Annesley was standing on the veranda. "Take charge of
the horse. Nancy, dear, I am so glad to see you!"

James was anything but glad.

"Betty, good gracious, whatever is the matter with this fellow? Has
he the black plague? Ugh!" She slid from the saddle unaided.

James stolidly took the reins.

"The kitchen stove-pipe fell down," Betty replied, "and James stood
in the immediate vicinity of it."

The two girls laughed joyously, but James did not even smile. He had
half a notion to kiss Nancy, as he had planned to do that memorable
night of the ball at the British embassy. But even as the notion came
to him, Nancy had climbed up the steps and was out of harm's way.

"James," said Miss Annesley, "go and wash your face at once."

"Yes, Miss."

At the sound of his voice Nancy turned swiftly; but the groom had
presented his back and was leading the horse to the stables.

Nancy would never tell me the substance of her conversation with Miss
Annesley that afternoon, but I am conceited enough to believe that a
certain absent gentleman was the main topic. When she left, it was
William who led out the horse. He explained that James was still
engaged with soap and water and pumice-stone. Miss Annesley's
laughter rang out heartily, and Nancy could not help joining her.

"And have you heard from that younger brother of yours?" Betty asked,
as her friend settled herself in the saddle.

"Not a line, Betty, not a line; and I had set my heart on your
meeting him. I do not know where he is, or when he will be back."

"Perhaps he is in quest of adventures."

"He is in Canada, hunting caribou."

"You don't tell me!"

"What a handsome girl you are, Betty!"--admiringly.

"What a handsome girl you are, Nancy!" mimicked the girl on the
veranda. "If your brother is only half as handsome, I do not know
whatever will become of this heart of mine when we finally meet." She
smiled and drolly placed her hands on her heart. "Don't look so
disappointed, Nan; perhaps we may yet meet. I have an idea that he
will prove interesting and entertaining;"--and she laughed again.

"Whoa, Dandy! What _are_ you laughing at?" demanded Nancy.

"I was thinking of James and his soap and water and pumice-stone.
That was all, dear. Saturday afternoon, then, we shall ride to the
club and have tea. Good-by, and remember me to the baby."

"Good-by!"--and Nancy cantered away.

What a blissful thing the lack of prescience is, sometimes!

When James had scraped the soot from his face and neck and hands, and
had sudsed it from his hair, James observed, with some concern, that
Pirate was coughing at a great rate. His fierce run against the wind
the day before had given him a cold. So James hunted about for the
handy veterinarian.

"Where do you keep your books here?" he asked William. "Pirate's got
a cold."

"In the house library. You just go in and get it. We always do that
at home. You'll find it on the lower shelf, to the right as you enter
the door."

It was half after four when James, having taken a final look at his
hands and nails, proceeded to follow William's instructions. He found
no one about. Outside the kitchen the lower part of the house was
deserted. To reach the library he had to pass through the music-room.
He saw the violin-case on the piano, and at once unconsciously pursed
his lips into a noiseless whistle. He passed on into the library. He
had never been in any of these rooms in the daytime. It was not very
light, even now.

The first thing that caught his attention was a movable drawing-
board, on which lay an uncompleted drawing. At one side stood a
glass, into which were thrust numerous pens and brushes. Near this
lay a small ball of crumpled cambric, such as women insist upon
carrying in their street-car purses, a delicate, dainty, useless
thing. So she drew pictures, too, he thought. Was there anything this
beautiful creature could not do? Everything seemed to suggest her
presence. An indefinable feminine perfume still lingered on the air,
speaking eloquently of her.

Curiosity impelled him to step forward and examine her work. He
approached with all the stealth of a gentlemanly burglar. He expected
to see some trees and hills and mayhap a brook, or some cows standing
in a stream, or some children picking daisies. He had a sister, and
was reasonably familiar with the kind of subjects chosen by the lady-
amateur.

A fortification plan!

He bent close to it. Here was the sea, here was the land, here the
number of soldiers, cannon, rounds of ammunition, resources in the
matter of procuring aid, the telegraph, the railways, everything was
here on this pale, waxen cloth, everything but a name. He stared at
it, bewildered. He couldn't understand what a plan of this sort was
doing outside the War Department. Instantly he became a soldier; he
forgot that he was masquerading as a groom; he forgot everything but
this mute thing staring up into his face. Underneath, on a little
shelf, he saw a stack of worn envelopes. He looked at them. Rough
drafts of plans. Governor's Island! Fortress Monroe! What did it
mean? What _could_ it mean? He searched and found plans, plans,
plans of harbors, plans of coast defenses, plans of ships building,
plans of full naval and military strength; everything, everything! He
straightened. How his breath pained him! ... And all this was the
handiwork of the woman he loved! Good God, what was going on in this
house? What right had such things as these to be in a private home?
For what purpose had they been drawn? so accurately reproduced? For
what purpose?

Oh, whatever the purpose was, _she_ was innocent; upon this
conviction he would willingly stake his soul. Innocent, innocent!
ticked the clock over the mantel. Yes, she was innocent. Else, how
could she laugh in that light-hearted fashion? How could the song
tremble on her lips? How could her eyes shine so bright and merry?...
Karloff, Annesley! Karloff the Russian, Annesley the American; the
one a secret agent of his country, the other a former trusted
official! No, no! He could not entertain so base a thought against
the father of the girl he loved. Had he not admired his clean record,
his personal bravery, his fearless honesty? And yet, that absent-
mindedness, this care-worn countenance, these must mean something.
The purpose, to find out the purpose of these plans!

[Illustration: "A Saint Bernard dog might have done as much."--ACT
III]

He took the handkerchief and hid it in his breast, and quietly stole
away.... A handkerchief, a rose, and a kiss; yes, that was all that
would ever be his.

Pirate nearly coughed his head off that night; but, it being
William's night off, nobody paid any particular attention to that
justly indignant animal.




XXI

THE ROSE


On a Wednesday morning, clear and cold: not a cloud floated across
the sky, nor did there rise above the horizon one of those clouds
(portentous forerunners of evil!) to which novelists refer as being
"no larger than a man's hand". Heaven knew right well that the blight
of evil was approaching fast enough, but there was no visible
indication on her face that glorious November morning. Doubtless you
are familiar with history and have read all about what great
personages did just before calamity swooped down on them. The Trojans
laughed at the wooden horse; I don't know how many Roman banqueters
never reached the desert because the enemy had not paid any singular
regard to courtesies in making the attack; men and women danced on
the eve of Waterloo--"On with the dance, let joy be unconfined";
_my_ heroine simply went shopping. It doesn't sound at all
romantic; very prosaic, in fact.

She declared her intention of making a tour of the shops and of
dropping into Mrs. Chadwick's on the way home. She ordered James to
bring around the pair and the coupe. James was an example of docile
obedience. As she came down the steps, she was a thing of beauty and
a joy for ever. She wore one of those jackets to which several gray-
squirrel families had contributed their hides, a hat whose existence
was due to the negligence of a certain rare bird, and many silk-worms
had spun the fabric of her gown. Had any one called her attention to
all this, there isn't any doubt that she would have been shocked.
Only here and there are women who see what a true Moloch fashion is;
this tender-souled girl saw only a handsome habit which pleased the
eye. Health bloomed in her cheeks, health shone from her eyes, her
step had all the elasticity of youth.

"Good morning, James," she said pleasantly.

James touched his hat. What was it, he wondered. Somehow her eyes
looked unfamiliar to him. Had I been there I could have read the
secret easily enough. Sometimes the pure pools of the forests are
stirred and become impenetrable; but by and by the commotion
subsides, and the water clears. So it is with the human soul. There
had been doubt hitherto in this girl's eyes; now, the doubt was gone.

To him, soberly watchful, her smile meant much; it was the patent of
her innocence of any wrong thought. All night he had tossed on his
cot, thinking, thinking! What should he do? What_ever_ should he
do? That some wrong was on the way he hadn't the least doubt. Should
he confront the colonel and demand an explanation, a demand he knew
he had a perfect right to make? If this should be evil, and the shame
of it fall on this lovely being?... No, no! He must stand aside, he
must turn a deaf ear to duty, the voice of love spoke too loud. His
own assurance of her innocence made him desire to fall at her feet
and worship. After all, it _was_ none of his affair. Had he not
played at this comedy, this thing would have gone on, and he would
have been in ignorance of its very existence. So, why should he
meddle? Yet that monotonous query kept beating on his brain: What
_was_ this thing?

He saw that he must wait. Yesterday he had feared nothing save his
own exposure. Comedy had frolicked in her grinning mask. And here was
Tragedy stalking in upon the scene.

The girl named a dozen shops which she desired to honor with her
custom and presence, and stepped into the coupe. William closed the
door, and James touched up the pair and drove off toward the city. He
was perfectly indifferent to any possible exposure. In truth, he
forgot everything, absolutely and positively everything, but the girl
and the fortification plans she had been drawing.

Scarce a half a dozen bundles were the result of the tour among the
shops.

"Mrs. Chadwick's, James."

The call lasted half an hour.

As a story-teller I am supposed to be everywhere, to follow the
footsteps of each and all of my characters, and with a fidelity and a
perspicacity nothing short of the marvelous. So I take the liberty of
imagining the pith of the conversation between the woman and the
girl.

_The Woman:_ How long, dear, have we known each other?

_The Girl:_ Since I left school, I believe. Where _did_ you
get that stunning morning gown?

_The Woman_ (smiling in spite of the serious purpose she has in
view): Never mind the gown, my child; I have something of greater
importance to talk about.

_The Girl: Is_ there anything more important to talk about among
women?

_The Woman:_ Yes. There is age.

_The Girl:_ But, mercy, we do not talk about that!

_The Woman:_ I am going to establish a precedent, then. I am
forty, or at least, I am on the verge of it.

_The Girl_ (warningly): Take care! If we should ever become
enemies! If I should ever become treacherous!

_The Woman:_ The world very well knows that I am older than I
look. That is why it takes such interest in my age.

_The Girl:_ The question is, how _do_ you preserve it?

_The Woman:_ Well, then, I am forty, while you stand on the
threshold of the adorable golden twenties. (Walks over to picture
taken eighteen years before and contemplates it.) Ah, to be twenty
again; to start anew, possessing my present learning and wisdom, and
knowledge of the world; to avoid the pits into which I so carelessly
stumbled! But no!

_The Girl_: Mercy! what have you to wish for? Are not princes
and ambassadors your friends; have you not health and wealth and
beauty? You wish for something, you who are so handsome and
brilliant!

_The Woman_: Blinds, my dear Betty, only blinds; for that is all
beauty and wealth and wit are. Who sees behind sees scars of many
wounds. You are without a mother, I am without a child. (Sits down
beside the girl and takes her hand in hers.) Will you let me be a
mother to you for just this morning? How can any man help loving you!
(impulsively.)

_The Girl_: How foolish you are, Grace!

_The Woman_: Ah, to blush like that!

_The Girl_: You are very embarrassing this morning. I believe
you are even sentimental. Well, my handsome mother for just this
morning, what is it you have to say to me? (jestingly.)

_The Woman_: I do not know just how to begin. Listen. If ever
trouble should befall you, if ever misfortune should entangle you,
will you promise to come to me?

_The Girl:_ Misfortune? What is on your mind, Grace?

_The Woman:_ Promise!

_The Girl:_ I promise. (Laughs.)

_The Woman:_ I am rich. Promise that if poverty should ever come
to you, you will come to me.

_The Girl_ (puzzled): I do not understand you at all!

_The Woman:_ Promise!

_The Girl:_ I promise; but--

_The Woman:_ Thank you, Betty.

_The Girl_ (growing serious): What is all this about, Grace? You
look so earnest.

_The Woman:_ Some day you will understand. Will you answer me
one question, as a daughter would answer her mother?

_The Girl_ (gravely): Yes.

_The Woman:_ Would you marry a title for the title's sake?

_The Girl_ (indignantly): I?

_The Woman:_ Yes; would you?

_The Girl:_ I shall marry the man I love, and if not him,
nobody. I mean, of course, _when_ I love.

_The Woman:_ Blushing again? My dear, is Karloff anything to
you?

_The Girl:_ Karloff? Mercy, no. He is handsome and fascinating
and rich, but I could not love him. It would be easier to love--to
love my groom outside.

(They both smile.)

_The Woman_ (grave once more): That is all I wished to know,
dear. Karloff is not worthy of you.

_The Girl_ (sitting very erect): I do not understand. Is he not
honorable?

_The Woman_ (hesitating): I have known him for seven years; I
have always found him honorable.

_The Girl:_ Why, then, should he not be worthy of me?

_The Woman_ (lightly): Is any man?

_The Girl:_ You are parrying my question. If I am to be your
daughter, there must be no fencing.

_The Woman_ (rising and going over to the portrait again): There
are some things that a mother may not tell even to her daughter.

_The Girl_ (determinedly): Grace, you have said too much or too
little. I do not love Karloff, I never could love him; but I like
him, and liking him, I feel called upon to defend him.

_The Woman_ (surprised into showing her dismay): You defend him?
You!

_The Girl:_ And why not? That is what I wish to know: why not?

_The Woman:_ My dear, you do not love him. That is all I wished
to know. Karloff is a brilliant, handsome man, a gentleman; his sense
of honor, such as it is, would do credit to many another man; but
behind all this there is a power which makes him helpless, makes him
a puppet, and robs him of certain worthy impulses. I have read
somewhere that corporations have no souls; neither have governments.
Ask me nothing more, Betty, for I shall answer no more questions.

_The Girl:_ I do not think you are treating me fairly.

_The Woman:_ At this moment I would willingly share with you
half of all I possess in the world.

_The Girl:_ But all this mystery!

_The Woman:_ As I have said, some day you will understand. Treat
Karloff as you have always treated him, politely and pleasantly. And
I beg of you never to repeat our conversation.

The Girl (to whom illumination suddenly comes; rises quickly and goes
over to the woman; takes her by the shoulders, and the two stare into
each other's eyes, the one searchingly, the other fearfully): Grace!

The Woman: I am a poor foolish woman, Betty, for all my worldliness
and wisdom; but I love you (softly), and that is why I appear weak
before you. The blind envy those who see, the deaf those who hear;
what one does not want another can not have. Karloff loves you, but
you do not love him.

(The girl kisses the woman gravely on the cheek, and without a word,
makes her departure.)

The Woman (as she hears the carriage roll away): Poor girl! Poor,
happy, unconscious, motherless child! If only I had the power to stay
the blow! ... Who can it be, then, that she loves?

The Girl (in her carriage): Poor thing! She adores Karloff, and I
never suspected it! I shall begin to hate him.

How well women read each other!

James had never parted with his rose and his handkerchief. They were
always with him, no matter what livery he wore. After luncheon,
William said that Miss Annesley desired to see him in the study. So
James spruced up and duly presented himself at the study door.

"You sent for me, Miss?"--his hat in his hand, his attitude
deferential and attentive.

She was engaged upon some fancy work, the name of which no man knows,
and if he were told, could not possibly remember for longer than ten
minutes. She laid this on the reading-table, stood up and brushed the
threads from the little two-by-four cambric apron.

"James, on Monday night I dropped a rose on the lawn. (Finds thread
on her sleeve.) In the morning when I looked for it (brushes the
apron again), it was gone. Did you find it?" She made a little ball
of the straggling threads and dropped it into the waste-basket. A
woman who has the support of beauty can always force a man to lower
his gaze. James looked at his boots. His heart gave one great bound
toward his throat, then sank what seemed to be fathoms deep in his
breast. This was a thunderbolt out of heaven itself. Had she seen
him, then? For a space he was tempted to utter a falsehood; but there
was that in her eyes which warned him of the uselessness of such an
expedient. Yet, to give up that rose would be like giving up some
part of his being. She repeated the question: "I ask you if you found
it."

"Yes, Miss Annesley."

"Do you still possess it?"

"Yes, Miss."

"And why did you pick it up?"

"It was fresh and beautiful; and I believed that some lady at the
dinner had worn it."

"And so you picked it up? Where did you find it?"

"Outside the bow-window, Miss."

"When?"

He thought for a moment. "In the morning, Miss."

"Take care, James; it was not yet eleven o'clock, at night."

"I admit what I said was not true, Miss. As you say, it was not yet
eleven." James was pale. So she had thrown it away, confident that
this moment would arrive. This humiliation was premeditated.
Patience, he said inwardly; this would be the last opportunity she
should have to humiliate him.

"Have you the flower on your person?"

"Yes, Miss."

"Did you know that it was mine?"

He was silent.

"Did you know that it was mine?"--mercilessly.

"Yes; but I believed that you had deliberately thrown it away. I saw
no harm in taking it."

"But there _was harm."_

"I bow to your superior judgment, Miss,"--ironically.

She deemed it wisest to pass over this experimental irony. "Give the
flower back to me. It is not proper that a servant should have in his
keeping a rose which was once mine, even if I had thrown it away or
discarded it."

Carefully he drew forth the crumpled flower. He looked at her, then
at the rose, hoping against hope that she might relent. He hesitated
till he saw an impatient movement of the extended hand. He
surrendered.

"Thank you. That is all. You may go."

She tossed the withered flower into the waste-basket.

"Pardon me, but before I go I have to announce that I shall resign
my position next Monday. The money which has been advanced to me,
deducting that which is due me, together with the amount of my fine
at the police-court, I shall be pleased to return to you on the
morning of my departure."

Miss Annesley's lips fell apart, and her brows arched. She was very
much surprised.

"You wish to leave my service?"--as if it were quite impossible that
such a thing should occur to him.

"Yes, Miss."

"You are dissatisfied with your position?"--icily.

"It is not that, Miss. As a groom I am perfectly satisfied. The
trouble lies in the fact that I have too many other things to do. It
is very distasteful for me to act in the capacity of butler. My
temper is not equable enough for that position." He bowed.

"Very well. I trust that you will not regret your decision." She sat
down and coolly resumed her work.

"It is not possible that I shall regret it."

"You may go."

He bowed again, one corner of his mouth twisted. Then he took himself
off to the stables. He was certainly in what they call a towering
rage.

If I were not a seer of the first degree, a narrator of the
penetrative order, I should be vastly puzzled over this singular
action on her part.




XXII

THE DRAMA UNROLLS


When a dramatist submits his _scenario_, he always accompanies
it with drawings, crude or otherwise, of the various set-scenes and
curtains known as drops. To the uninitiated these scrawls would look
impossible; but to the stage-manager's keen, imaginative eye a whole
picture is represented in these few pothooks. Each object on the
stage is labeled alphabetically; thus A may represent a sofa, B a
window, C a table, and so forth and so on. I am not a dramatist; I am
not writing an acting drama; so I find that a diagram of the library
in Senator Blank's house is neither imperative nor advisable. It
is half after eight; the curtain rises; the music of a violin is
heard coming from the music-room; Colonel Annesley is discovered
sitting in front of the wood fire, his chin sunk on his breast, his
hands hanging listlessly on each side of the chair, his face deeply
lined. From time to time he looks at the clock. I can imagine no
sorrier picture than that of this loving, tender-hearted, wretched
old man as he sits there, waiting for Karloff and the ignominious
end. Fortune gone with the winds, poverty leering into his face,
shame drawing her red finder across his brow, honor in sackcloth and
ashes!

And but two short years ago there had not been in all the wide land a
more contented man than himself, a man with a conscience freer. God!
Even yet he could hear the rolling, whirring ivory ball as it spun
the circle that fatal night at Monte Carlo. Man does not recall the
intermediate steps of his fall, only the first step and the last. In
his waking hours the colonel always heard the sound of it, and it
rattled through his troubled dreams. He could not understand how
everything had gone as it had. It seemed impossible that in two years
he had dissipated a fortune, sullied his honor, beggared his child.
It was all so like a horrible dream. If only he might wake; if only
God would be so merciful as to permit him to wake! He hid his face.
There is no hell save conscience makes it.

The music laughed and sighed and laughed. It was the music of love
and youth; joyous, rollicking, pulsing music.

The colonel sprang to his feet suddenly, his hands at his throat. He
was suffocating. The veins gnarled on his neck and brow. There was
in his heart a pain as of many knives. His arms fell: of what use
was it to struggle? He was caught, trapped in a net of his own
contriving.

Softly he crossed the room and stood by the portiere beyond which was
the music-room. She was happy, happy in her youth and ignorance; she
could play all those sprightly measures, her spirit as light and
conscience-free; she could sing, she could laugh, she could dance.
And all the while his heart was breaking, breaking!

"How shall I face her mother?" he groaned.

The longing which always seizes the guilty to confess and relieve the
mind came over him. If only he dared rush in there, throw himself at
her feet, and stammer forth his wretched tale! She was of his flesh,
of his blood; when she knew she would not wholly condemn him . . .
No, no! He could not. She honored and trusted him now; she had
placed him on so high a pedestal that it was utterly impossible for
him to disillusion her young mind, to see for ever and ever the mute
reproach in her honest eyes, to feel that though his arm encircled
her she was beyond his reach.... God knew that he could not tell this
child of the black gulf he had digged for himself and her.

Sometimes there came to him the thought to put an end to this
maddening grief, by violence to period this miserable existence. But
always he cast from him the horrible thought. He was not a coward,
and the cowardice of suicide was abhorrent to him. Poverty he might
leave her, but not the legacy of a suicide. If only it might be God's
kindly will to let him die, once this abominable bargain was
consummated! Death is the seal of silence; it locks alike the lips of
the living and the dead. And she might live in ignorance, till the
end of her days, without knowing that her wealth was the price of her
father's dishonor.

A mist blurred his sight; he could not see. He steadied himself, and
with an effort regained his chair noiselessly. And how often he had
smiled at the drama on the stage, with its absurdities, its
tawdriness, its impossibilities! Alas, what did they on the stage
that was half so weak as he had done: ruined himself without motive
or reason!

The bell sang its buzzing note; there was the sound of crunching
wheels on the driveway; the music ceased abruptly. Silence. A door
opened and closed. A moment or so later Karloff, preceded by the
girl, came into the study. She was grave because she remembered Mrs.
Chadwick. He was grave also; he had various reasons for being so.

"Father, the count tells me that he has an engagement with you," she
said. She wondered if this appointment in any way concerned her.

"It is true, my child. Leave us, and give orders that we are not to
be disturbed."

She scrutinized him sharply. How strangely hollow his voice sounded!
Was he ill?

"Father, you are not well. Count, you must promise me not to keep him
long, however important this interview may be. He is ill and needs
rest,"--and her loving eyes caressed each line of care in her
parent's furrowed cheeks.

Annesley smiled reassuringly. It took all the strength of his will,
all that remained of a high order of courage, to create this smile.
He wanted to cry out to her that it was a lie, a mockery. Behind that
smile his teeth grated.

"I shall not keep him long, Mademoiselle," said the count. He spoke
gently, but he studiously avoided her eyes.

She hesitated for a moment on the threshold; she knew not why. Her
lips even formed words, but she did not speak. What was it? Something
oppressed her. Her gaze wandered indecisively from her father to the
count, from the count to her father.

"When you are through," she finally said, "bring your cigars into the
music-room."

"With the greatest pleasure, Mademoiselle," replied the count. "And
play, if you so desire; our business is such that your music will be
as a pleasure added.'"

Her father nodded; but he could not force another smile to his lips.
The brass rings of the portiere rattled, and she was gone. But she
left behind a peculiar tableau, a tableau such as is formed by those
who stand upon ice which is about to sink and engulf them.

The two men stood perfectly still. I doubt not that each experienced
the same sensation, that the same thought occurred to each mind,
though it came from different avenues: love and shame. The heart of
the little clock on the mantel beat tick-tock, tick-tock; a log
crackled and fell between the irons, sending up a shower of
evanescent sparks; one of the long windows giving out upon the
veranda creaked mysteriously.

Karloff was first to break the spell. He made a gesture which was
eloquent of his distaste of the situation.

"Let us terminate this as quickly as possible," he said.

"Yes, let us have done with it before I lose my courage," replied the
colonel, his voice thin and quavering. He wiped his forehead with his
handkerchief. His hand shone white and his nails darkly blue.

The count stepped over to the table, reached into the inner pocket of
his coat, and extracted a packet. In this packet was the enormous sum
of one hundred and eighty thousand dollars in notes of one thousand
denomination; that is to say, one hundred and eighty slips of paper
redeemable in gold by the government which had issued them. On top of
this packet lay the colonel's note for twenty thousand dollars.

(It is true that Karloff never accepted money from his government in
payment for his services; but it is equally true that for every penny
he laid out he was reimbursed by Russia.)

Karloff placed the packet on the table, first taking off the note,
which he carelessly tossed beside the bank-notes.

"You will observe that I have not bothered with having your note
discounted. I have fulfilled my part of the bargain; fulfil yours."
The count thrust his trembling hands into his trousers pockets. He
desired to hide this embarrassing sign from his accomplice.

Annesley went to a small safe which stood at the left of the
fireplace and returned with a packet somewhat bulkier than the
count's. He dropped it beside the money, shudderingly, as though he
had touched a poisonous viper.

"My honor," he said simply. "I had never expected to sell it so
cheap."

There was a pause, during which neither man's gaze swerved from the
other's. There was not the slightest, not even the remotest, fear of
treachery; each man knew with whom he was dealing; yet there they
stood, as if fascinated. One would have thought that the colonel
would have counted his money, or Karloff his plans; they did neither.
Perhaps the colonel wanted Karloff to touch the plans first, before
he touched the money; perhaps Karloff had the same desire, only the
other way around.

[Illustration: "I am simply Miss Annesly's servant."--ACT III.]

The colonel spoke.

"I believe that is all" he said quietly. The knowledge that the deed
was done and that there was no retreat gave back to him a particle of
his former coolness and strength of mind. It had been the thought of
committing the crime that had unnerved him. Now that his bridges
were burned, a strange, unnatural calm settled on him.

The count evidently was not done. He moistened his lips. There was
a dryness in his throat.

"It is not too late" he said; "I have not yet touched them."

"We shall not indulge in moralizing, if you please," interrupted the
colonel, with savage irony. "The moment for that has gone by."

"Very well." Karloff's shoulders settled; his jaws became
aggressively angular; some spirit of his predatory forebears touched
his face here and there, hardening it. "I wish to speak in regard to
your daughter."

"Enough! Take my honor and be gone!" The colonel's voice was loud and
rasping.

Karloff rested his hands on the table and inclined his body toward
the colonel.

"Listen to me," he began. "There is in every man the making and the
capacity of a great rascal. Time and opportunity alone are needed--
and a motive. The other night I told you that I could not give up
your daughter. Well, I have not given her up. She must be my wife."

"Must?" The colonel clenched his hands.

"Must. To-night I am going to prove myself a great rascal--with a
great motive. What is Russia to me? Nothing. What is your dishonor or
my own? Less than nothing. There is only one thing, and that is my
love for your daughter." He struck the table and the flame of the
student-lamp rose violently. "She must be mine, mine! I have tried to
win her as an honorable man tries to win the woman he loves; now she
must be won by an act of rascality. Heaven nor hell shall force me to
give her up. Yes, I love her; and I lower myself to your level to
gain her."

"To my level! Take care; I am still a man, with a man's strength,"
cried the colonel.

Karloff swept his hand across his forehead. "I have lied to myself
long enough, and to you. I can see now that I have been working
solely toward one end. My country is not to be considered, neither is
yours. Do you realize that you stand wholly and completely in my
power?" He ran his tongue across his lips, which burned with fever.

"What do you mean?"--hoarsely.

"I mean, your daughter must become my wife, or I shall notify your
government that you have attempted to betray it."

"You dishonorable wretch!" The colonel balled his fists and protruded
his nether lip. Only the table stood between them.

"That term or another, it does not matter. The fact remains that you
have sold to me the fortification plans of your country; and though
it be in times of peace, you are none the less guilty and culpable.
Your daughter shall be my wife."

"I had rather strangle her with these hands!"--passionately.

"Well, why should I not have her for my wife? Who loves her more than
I? I am rich; from hour to hour, from day to day, what shall I not
plan to make her happy? I love her with all the fire and violence of
my race and blood. I can not help it. I will not, can not, live
without her! Good God, yes! I recognize the villainy of my actions.
But I am mad to-night."

"So I perceive." The colonel gazed wildly about the walls for a
weapon. There was not even the usual ornamental dagger.

A window again stirred mysteriously. A few drops of rain plashed on
the glass and zigzagged down to the sash.

"Sooner or later your daughter must know. Request her presence. It
rests with her, not with you, as to what course I must follow."
Karloff was extraordinarily pale, and his dark eyes, reflecting the
dancing flames, sparkled like rubies.

He saw the birth of horror in the elder's eyes, saw it grow and grow.
He saw the colonel's lips move spasmodically, but utter no sound.
What was it he saw over his (the count's) shoulders and beyond?
Instinctively he turned, and what he saw chilled the heat of his
blood.

There stood the girl, her white dress marble-white against the dark
wine of the portiere, an edge of which one hand clutched
convulsively. Was it Medusa's beauty or her magic that turned men
into stone? My recollection is at fault. At any rate, so long as she
remained motionless, neither man had the power to stir. She held
herself perfectly erect; every fiber in her young body was tense. Her
beauty became weirdly powerful, masked as it was with horror, doubt,
shame, and reproach. She had heard; little or much was of no
consequence. In the heat of their variant passions, the men's voices
had risen to a pitch that penetrated beyond the room.

Karloff was first to recover, and he took an involuntary step toward
her; but she waved him back disdainfully.

"Do not come near me. I loathe you!" The voice was low, but every
note was strained and unmusical.

He winced. His face could not have stung or burned more hotly had she
struck him with her hand.

"Mademoiselle!"

She ignored him. "Father, what does this mean?"

"Agony!" The colonel fell back into his chair, pressing his hands
over his eyes.

"I will tell you what it means!" cried Karloff, a rage possessing
him. He had made a mistake. He had misjudged both the father and the
child. He could force her into his arms, but he would always carry a
burden of hate. "It means that this night you stand in the presence
of a dishonored parent, a man who has squandered your inheritance
over gambling tables, and who, to recover these misused sums, has
sold to me the principal fortification plans of his country. That is
what is means, Mademoiselle."

She grasped the portiere for support.

"Father, is this thing true?" Her voice fell to a terror-stricken
whisper.

"Oh, it is true enough," said Karloff. "God knows that it is true
enough. But it rests with you to save him. Become my wife, and
yonder fire shall swallow his dishonor--and mine. Refuse, and I
shall expose him. After all, love is a primitive state, and with it
we go back to the beginning; before it honor or dishonor is nothing.
To-night there is nothing, nothing in the world save my love for you,
and the chance that has given me the power to force you to be mine.
What a fury and a tempest love produces! It makes an honorable man
of the knave, a rascal of the man of honor; it has toppled thrones,
destroyed nations, obliterated races. ... Well, I have become a
rascal. Mademoiselle, you must become my wife." He lifted his
handsome head resolutely.

Without giving him so much as a glance, she swept past him and sank
on her knees at her father's side, taking his hands by the wrists and
pressing them down from his face.

"Father, tell him he lies! Tell him he lies!" Ah, the entreaty, the
love, the anxiety, the terror that blended her tones!

He strove to look away.

"Father, you are all I have," she cried brokenly. "Look at me! Look
at me and tell him that he lies!... You will not look at me? God have
mercy on me, it is true, then!" She rose and spread her arms toward
heaven to entreat God to witness her despair. "I did not think or
know that such base things were done... That these loving hands
should have helped to encompass my father's dishonor, his
degradation! ... For money! What is money? You knew, father, that
what was mine was likewise yours. Why did you not tell me? I should
have laughed; we should have begun all over again; I could have
earned a living with my music; we should have been honest and happy.
And now!... And I drew those plans with a heart full of love and
happiness! Oh, it is not that you gambled, that you have foolishly
wasted a fortune; it is not these that hurt here,"--pressing her
heart. "It is the knowledge that you, my father, should let _me_
draw those horrible things. It hurts! Ah, how it hurts!" A sob choked
her. She knelt again at her parent's side and flung her arms around
the unhappy, wretched man. "Father, you have committed a crime to
shield a foolish act. I know, I know! What you have done you did for
my sake, to give me back what you thought was my own. Oh, how well I
know that you had no thought of yourself; it was all for me, and I
thank God for that. But something has died here, something here in my
heart. I have been so happy! ... too happy! My poor father!" She laid
her head against his breast.

"My heart is broken! Would to God that I might die!" Annesley threw
one arm across the back of the chair and turned his face to his
sleeve.

Karloff, a thousand arrows of regret and shame and pity quivering in
his heart, viewed the scene moodily, doggedly. No, he could not go
back; there was indeed a wall behind him: pride.

"Well, Mademoiselle?"

She turned, still on her knees.

"You say that if I do not marry you, you will ruin my father, expose
him?"

"Yes,"--thinly.

"Listen. I am a proud woman, yet will I beg you not to do this
horrible thing--force me into your arms. Take everything, take all
that is left; you can not be so utterly base as to threaten such a
wrong. See!"--extending her lovely arms, "I am on my knees to you!"

"My daughter!" cried the father.

"Do not interrupt me, father; he will relent; he is not wholly
without pity."

"No, no! No, no!" Karloff exclaimed, turning his head aside and
repelling with his hands, as if he would stamp out the fires of pity
which, at the sound of her voice, had burst anew in his heart. "I
_will_ not give you up!"

She drew her sleeve across her eyes and stood up. All at once she
wheeled upon him like a lioness protecting its young. In her wrath
she was as magnificent as the wife of--Aeneas at the funeral pyre of
that great captain.

"She knew! That was why she asked me all those questions; that is why
she exacted those promises! Mrs. Chadwick knew and dared not tell me!
And I trusted you as a friend, as a gentleman, as a man of honor!"
Her laughter rang out wildly. "And for these favors you bring
dishonor! Shame! Shame! Your wife? Have you thought well of what you
are about to do?"

"So well," he declared, "that I shall proceed to the end, to the very
end." How beautiful she was! And a mad desire urged him to spring to
her, crush her in his arms, and force upon her lips a thousand mad
kisses!

"Have you weighed well the consequences?"

"Upon love's most delicate scales."

"Have you calculated what manner of woman I am?"--with subdued
fierceness.

"To me you are the woman of all women."

"Do you think that I am a faint-hearted girl? You are making a
mistake. I am a woman with a woman's mind, and a thousand years would
not alter my utter contempt of you. Force me to marry you, and as
there is a God above us to witness, every moment of suffering you now
inflict upon me and mine, I shall give back a day, a long, bitter,
galling day. Do you think that it will be wise to call me countess?"
Her scorn was superb.

"I am waiting for your answer. Will you be my wife, or shall I be
forced to make my villainy definitive?"

"Permit me to take upon these shoulders the burden of answering that
question," said a voice from the window.

Warburton, dressed in his stable clothes and leggings, hatless and
drenched with rain, stepped into the room from the veranda and
quickly crossed the intervening space. Before any one of the tragic
group could recover from the surprise caused by his unexpected
appearance, he had picked up the packet of plans and had dropped it
into the fire. Then he leaned with his back against the mantel and
faced them, or rather Karloff, of whom he was not quite sure.




XXIII

SOMETHING ABOUT HEROES


Tick-lock, tick-tock went the voice of the little friend of eternity
on the mantel-piece; the waxen sheets (to which so much care and
labor had been given) writhed and unfolded, curled and crackled, and
blackened on the logs; the cold wind and rain blew in through the
opened window; the lamp flared and flickered inside its green shade;
a legion of heroes peered out from the book-cases, no doubt much
astonished at the sight of this ordinary hero of mine and his mean,
ordinary clothes. I have in my mind's eye the picture of good
D'Artagnan's frank contempt, Athos' magnificent disdain, the
righteous (I had almost said honest!) horror of the ultra-fashionable
Aramis, and the supercilious indignation of the bourgeois Porthos.
What! this a hero? Where, then, was his rapier, his glittering
baldric, his laces, his dancing plumes, his fine air?

Several times in the course of this narrative I have expressed my
regret in not being an active witness of this or that scene, a regret
which, as I am drawing most of these pictures from hearsay, is
perfectly natural. What must have been the varying expressions on
each face! Warburton, who, though there was tumult in his breast,
coolly waited for Karloff to make the next move; Annesley, who saw
his terrible secret in the possession of a man whom he supposed to be
a stable-man; Karloff, who saw his house of cards vanish in the
dartling tongues of flame, and recognized the futility of his
villainy; the girl... Ah, who shall describe the dozen shadowy
emotions which crossed and recrossed her face?

From Warburton's dramatic entrance upon the scene to Karloff's first
movement, scarce a minute had passed, though to the girl and her
father an eternity seemed to come and go. Karloff was a brave man.
Upon the instant of his recovery, he sprang toward Warburton,
silently and with predetermination: he must regain some fragment of
those plans. He would not, could not, suffer total defeat before this
girl's eyes; his blood rebelled against the thought. He expected the
groom to strike him, but James simply caught him by the arms and
thrust him back.

"No, Count; no, no; they shall burn to the veriest crisp!"

"Stand aside, lackey!" cried Karloff, a sob of rage strangling him.
Again he rushed upon Warburton, his clenched hand uplifted. Warburton
did not even raise his hands this time. So they stood, their faces
within a hand's span of each other, the one smiling coldly, the other
in the attitude of striking a blow. Karloff's hand fell unexpectedly,
but not on the man in front of him. "Good God, no! a gentleman does
not strike a lackey! Stand aside, stand aside!"

"They shall burn, Count,"--quietly; "they shall burn, because I am
physically the stronger." Warburton turned quickly and with the toe
of his boot shifted the glowing packet and renewed the flames. "I
never realized till to-night that I loved my country half so well.
Lackey? Yes, for the present."

He had not yet looked at the girl.

"Ah!" Karloff cried, intelligence lighting his face. "You are no
lackey!"--subduing his voice.

James smiled. "You are quite remarkable."

"Who are you? I demand to know!"

"First and foremost, I am a citizen of the United States; I have been
a soldier besides. It was my common right to destroy these plans,
which indirectly menaced my country's safety. These,"--pointing to
the bank-notes, "are yours, I believe. Nothing further requires your
presence here."

"Yes, yes; I remember now! Fool that I have been!" Karloff struck his
forehead in helpless rage. "I never observed you closely till now. I
recall. The secret service: Europe, New York, Washington; you have
known it all along. Spy!"

"That is an epithet which easily rebounds. Spy? Why, yes; I do for my
country what you do for yours."

"The name, the name! I can not recollect the name! The beard is gone,
but that does not matter,"--excitedly.

Warburton breathed easier. While he did not want the girl to know who
he was just then, he was glad that Karloffs memory had taken his
thought away from the grate and its valuable but rapidly disappearing
fuel.

"Father! Father, what is it?" cried the girl, her voice keyed to
agony. "Father!"

The two men turned about. Annesley had fainted in his chair. Both
Warburton and Karloff mechanically started forward to offer aid, but
she repelled their approach.

"Do not come near me; you have done enough. Father, dear!" She
slapped the colonel's wrists and unloosed his collar.

The antagonists, forgetting their own battle, stood silently watching
hers. Warburton's mind was first to clear, and without a moment's
hesitation he darted from the room and immediately returned with a
glass of water. He held it out to the girl. Their glances clashed; a
thousand mute, angry questions in her eyes, a thousand mute, humble
answers in his. She accepted the glass, and her hand trembled as she
dipped her fingers into the cool depths and flecked the drops into
the unconscious man's face.

Meanwhile Karloff stood with folded arms, staring melancholically
into the grate, where his dreams had disappeared in smoke. By and by
the colonel sighed and opened his eyes. For a time he did not know
where he was, and his gaze wandered mistily from face to face. Then
recollection came back to him, recollection bristling with thorns. He
struggled to his feet and faced Warburton. The girl put her arms
around him to steady him, but he gently disengaged himself.

"Are you from the secret service, sir? If so, I am ready to accompany
you wherever you say. I, who have left my blood on many a
battleground, was about to commit a treasonable act. Allow me first
to straighten up my affairs, then you may do with me as you please. I
am guilty of a crime; I have the courage to pay the penalty." His
calm was extraordinary, and even Karloff looked at him with a sparkle
of admiration.

As a plummet plunges into the sea, so the girl's look plunged into
Warburton's soul; and had he been an officer of the law, he knew that
he would have utterly disregarded his duty.

"I am not a secret service man, sir," he replied unevenly. "If I
were,"--pointing to the grate, "your plans would not have fed the
fire."

"Who are you, then, and what do you in my house in this guise?"--
proudly.

"I am your head stable-man--for the present. It was all by chance. I
came into this room yesterday to get a book on veterinary surgery. I
accidentally saw a plan. I have been a soldier. I knew that such a
thing had no rightful place in this house.... I was coming across the
lawn, when I looked into the window. ... It is not for me to judge
you, sir. My duty lay in destroying those plans before they harmed
any one."

"No, it is not for you to judge me," said the colonel. "I have
gambled away my daughter's fortune. To keep her in ignorance of the
fact and to return to her the amount I had wrongfully used, I
consented to sell to Russia the coast fortification plans of my
country, such as I could draw from memory. No, it is not for you to
judge me; only God has the right to do that."

"I am only a groom," said Warburton, simply. "What I have heard I
shall forget."

Ah, had he but looked at the girl's face then!

A change came over Karloff's countenance; his shoulders drooped; the
melancholy fire died out of his face and eyes. With an air of
resignation and a clear sense of the proportion of things, he reached
out and took up the note upon which Annesley had scrawled his
signature.

Warburton, always alert, seized the count's wrist. He saw the name of
a bank and the sum of five figures.

"What is this?" he demanded.

"It is mine," replied the count, haughtily.

Warburton released him.

"He speaks truly," said the colonel. "It is his."

"The hour of madness is past," the Russian began, slowly and
musically. The tone was musing. He seemed oblivious of his
surroundings and that three pairs of curious eyes were leveled in his
direction. He studied the note, creased it, drew it through his
fingers, smoothed it and caressed it. "And I should have done exactly
as I threatened. There is, then, a Providence which watches jealously
over the innocent? And I was a skeptic!... Two hundred thousand
dollars,"--picking up the packet of banknotes and balancing it on his
hand. "Well, it is a sum large enough to tempt any man. How the plans
and schemes of men crumble to the touch! Ambition is but the pursuit
of mirages.... Mademoiselle, you will never know what the ignominy of
this moment has cost me--nor how well I love you. I come of a race of
men who pursue their heart's desire through fire and water. Obstacles
are nothing; the end is everything. In Europe I should have won, in
honor or in dishonor. But this American people, I do not quite
understand them; and that is why I have played the villain to no
purpose."

He paused, and a sad, bitter smile played over his face.

"Mademoiselle," he continued, "henceforth, wherever I may go, your
face and the sound of your voice shall abide with me. I do not ask
you to forget, but I ask you to forgive." Again he paused.

She uttered no sound.

"Well, one does not forget nor forgive these things in so short a
time. And, after all, it was your own father's folly. Fate threw him
across my path at a critical moment--but I had reckoned without you.
Your father is a brave man, for he had the courage to offer himself
to the law; I have the courage to give you up. I, too, am a soldier;
I recognize the value of retreat." To Warburton he said: "A groom, a
hostler, to upset such plans as these! I do not know who you are,
sir, nor how to account for your timely and peculiar appearance. But
I fully recognize the falseness of your presence here. Eh, well, this
is what comes of race prejudice, the senseless battle which has
always been and always will be waged between the noble and the
peasant. Had I observed you at the proper time, our positions might
relatively have been changed. Useless retrospection!" To Annesley:
"Sir, we are equally culpable. Here is this note of yours. I might,
as a small contribution toward righting the comparative wrong which I
have done you, I might cast it into the fire. But between gentlemen,
situated as we are, the act would be as useless as it would be
impossible. I might destroy the note, but you would refuse to accept
such generosity at my hands,--which is well."

"What you say is perfectly true." The colonel drew his daughter
closer to him.

"So," went on the count, putting the note in his pocket, "to-morrow I
shall have my ducats."

"My bank will discount the note," said the colonel, with a proud
look; "my indebtedness shall be paid in full."

"As I have not the slightest doubt. Mademoiselle, fortune ignores you
but temporarily; misfortune has brushed only the hem of your garment,
as it were. Do not let the fear of poverty alarm you,"--lightly. "I
prophesy a great public future for you. And when you play that
_Largo_ of Handel's, to a breathless audience, who knows that I
may not be hidden behind the curtain of some stall, drinking in the
heavenly sound made by that loving bow?.... Romance enters every
human being's life; like love and hate, it is primitive. But to every
book fate writes _finis_."

He thrust the bank-notes carelessly into his coat pocket, and walked
slowly toward the hallway. At the threshold he stopped and looked
back. The girl could not resist the magnetism of his dark eyes. She
was momentarily fascinated, and her heart beat painfully.

"If only I might go with the memory of your forgiveness," he said.

"I forgive you."

"Thank you." Then Karloff resolutely proceeded; the portiere fell
behind him. Shortly after she heard the sound of closing doors, the
rattle of a carriage, and then all became still. Thus the handsome
barbarian passed from the scene.

The colonel resumed his chair, his arm propped on a knee and his head
bowed in his hand. Quickly the girl fell to her knees, hid her face
on his breast, and regardless of the groom's presence, silently wept.

"My poor child!" faltered the colonel. "God could not have intended
to give you so wretched a father. Poverty and dishonor, poverty and
dishonor; I who love you so well have brought you these!"

Warburton, biting his trembling lips, tiptoed cautiously to the
window, opened it and stepped outside. He raised his fevered face
gratefully to the icy rain. A great and noble plan had come to him.

As Mrs. Chadwick said, love is magnificent only when it gives all
without question.




XXIV

A FINE LOVER


Karloff remained in seclusion till the following Tuesday; after that
day he was seen no more in Washington. From time to time some news
of him filters through the diplomatic circles of half a dozen
capitals to Washington. The latest I heard of him, he was at Port
Arthur. It was evident that Russia valued his personal address too
highly to exile him because of his failure in Washington. Had he
threatened or gone about noisily, we should all have forgotten him
completely. As it is, the memory of him to-day is as vivid as his
actual presence. Thus, I give him what dramatists call an agreeable
exit.

I was in the Baltimore and Potomac station the morning after that
unforgetable night at Senator Blank's house. I had gone there to see
about the departure of night trains, preparatory to making a flying
trip to New York, and was leaving the station when a gloved hand
touched me on the arm. The hand belonged to Mrs. Chadwick. She was
dressed in the conventional traveling gray, and but for the dark
lines under her eyes she would have made a picture for any man to
admire. She looked tired, very tired, as women look who have not
slept well.

"Good morning, Mr. Orator," she said, saluting me with a smile.

"You are going away?" I asked, shaking her hand cordially.

"'Way, 'way, away! I am leaving for Nice, where I expect to spend the
winter. I had intended to remain in Washington till the holidays; but
I plead guilty to a roving disposition, and I frequently change my
mind."

"Woman's most charming prerogative," said I, gallantly.

What a mask the human countenance is! How little I dreamed that I was
jesting with a woman whose heart was breaking, and numbed with a
terrible pain!

Her maid came up to announce that everything was ready for her
reception in the state-room, and that the train was about to draw out
of the station. Mrs. Chadwick and I bade each other good-by. Two
years passed before I saw her again.

At eleven o'clock I returned to my rooms to pack a case and have the
thing off my mind. Tramping restlessly up and down before my bachelor
apartment house I discerned M'sieu Zhames. His face was pale and
troubled, but the angle of his jaw told me that he had determined
upon something or other.

"Ha!" I said railingly. He wore a decently respectable suit of ready-
made clothes. "Lost your job and want me to give you a recommendation?"

"I want a few words with you, Chuck, and no fooling. Don't say that
you can't spare the time. You've simply _got_ to."

"With whom am I to talk, James, the groom, or Warburton, the
gentleman?"

"You are to talk with the man whose sister you are to marry."

I became curious, naturally. "No police affair?"

"No, it's not the police. I can very well go to a lawyer, but I
desire absolute secrecy. Let us go up to your rooms at once."

I led the way. I was beginning to desire to know what all this meant.

"Has anybody recognized you?" I asked, unlocking the door to my
apartment.

"No; and I shouldn't care a hang if they had."

"Oho!"

Warburton flung himself into a chair and lighted a cigar. He puffed
it rapidly, while I got together my shaving and toilet sets.

"Start her up," said I.

"Chuck, when my father died he left nearly a quarter of a million in
five per cents; that is to say, Jack, Nancy and I were given a yearly
income of about forty-five hundred. Nancy's portion and mine are
still in bonds which do not mature till 1900. Jack has made several
bad investments, and about half of his is gone; but his wife has
plenty, so his losses do not trouble him. Now, I have been rather
frugal during the past seven years. I have lived entirely upon my
Army pay. I must have something like twenty-five thousand lying in
the bank in New York. On Monday, between three and four o'clock,
Colonel Annesley will become practically a beggar, a pauper."

"What?" My shaving-mug slipped from my hand and crashed to the floor,
where it lay in a hundred pieces.

"Yes. He and his daughter will not have a roof of their own: all
gone, every stick and stone. Don't ask me any questions; only do as I
ask of you." He took out his check-book and filled out two blanks.
These he handed to me. "The large one I want you to place in the
Union bank, to the credit of Colonel Annesley."

I looked at the check. "Twenty thousand dollars?" I gasped.

"The Union bank has this day discounted the colonel's note. It falls
due on Monday. In order to meet it, he will have to sell what is left
of the Virginian estate and his fine horses. The interest will be
inconsiderable."

"What--" I began, but he interrupted me.

"I shall not answer a single question. The check for three thousand
is for the purchase of the horses, which will be put on sale Saturday
morning. They are easily worth this amount. Through whatever agency
you please, buy these horses for me, but not in my name. As for the
note, cash my check first and present the currency for the note. No
one will know anything about it then. You can not trace money."

"Good Lord, Bob, you are crazy! You are giving away a fortune," I
remonstrated.

"It is my own, and my capital remains untouched."

"Have you told her that you love her? Does she know who you are?" I
was very much excited.

"No,"--sadly, "I haven't told her that I love her. She does not know
who I am. What is more, I never want her to know. I have thrown my
arms roughly around her, thinking her to be Nancy, and have kissed
her. Some reparation is due her. On Monday I shall pack up quietly
and return to the West"

"Annesley beggared? What in heaven's name does this all mean?" I was
confounded.

"Some day, Chuck, when you have entered the family properly as my
sister's husband, perhaps I may confide in you. At present the secret
isn't mine. Let it suffice that through peculiar circumstances, the
father of the girl I love is ruined. I am not doing this for any
theatrical play, gratitude and all that rot,"--with half a smile, "I
admire and respect Colonel Annesley; I love his daughter, hopelessly
enough. I have never been of much use to any one. Other persons'
troubles never worried me to any extent; I was happy-go-lucky,
careless and thoughtless. True, I never passed a beggar without
dropping a coin into his cup. But often this act was the result of a
good dinner and a special vintage. The twenty thousand will keep the
colonel's home, the house his child was born in and her mother before
her. I am doing this crazy thing, as you call it, because it is
going to make me rather happy. I shall disappear Monday. They may
or they may not suspect who has come to their aid. They may even
trace the thing to you; but you will be honor-bound to reveal
nothing. When you have taken up the note, mail it to Annesley. You
will find Count Karloff's name on it."

"Karloff?" I was in utter darkness.

"Yes. Annesley borrowed twenty thousand of him on a three months'
note. Both men are well known at the Union bank, Karloff having a
temporary large deposit there, and Annesley always having done his
banking at the same place. Karloff, for reasons which I can not tell
you, did not turn in the note till this morning. You will take it up
this afternoon."

"Annesley, whom I believed to be a millionaire, penniless; Karloff
one of his creditors? Bob, I do not think that you are treating me
fairly. I can't go into this thing blind."

"If you will not do it under these conditions, I shall have to find
some one who will,"--resolutely.

I looked at the checks and then at him.... Twenty-three thousand
dollars! It was more than I ever before held in my hand at one time.
And he was giving it away as carelessly as I should have given away a
dime. Then the bigness of the act, the absolute disinterestedness of
it, came to me suddenly.

"Bob, you are the finest lover in all the world! And if Miss Annesley
ever knows who you are, she isn't a woman if she does not fall
immediately in love with you." I slapped him on the shoulder. I was
something of a lover myself, and I could understand.

"She will never know. I don't want her to know. That is why I am
going away. I want to do a good deed, and be left in the dark to
enjoy it. That is all. After doing this, I could never look her in
the eyes as Robert Warburton. I shall dine with the folks on Sunday.
I shall confess all only to Nancy, who has always been the only
confidante I have ever had among the women."

There was a pause. I could bring no words to my lips. Finally I
stammered out: "Nancy knows. I told her everything last night. I
broke my word with you, Bob, but I could not help it She was crying
again over what she thinks to be your heartlessness. I _had_ to
tell her."

"What did she say?"--rising abruptly.

"She laughed, and I do not know when I have seen her look so happy.
There'll be a double wedding yet, my boy." I was full of enthusiasm.

"I wish I could believe you, Chuck; I wish I could. I'm rather glad
you told Nan. I love her, and I don't want her to worry about me." He
gripped my hand. "You will do just as I ask?"

"To the very letter. Will you have a little Scotch to perk you up a
bit? You look rather seedy."

"No,"--smiling dryly. "If she smelt liquor on my breath I should lose
my position. Good-by, then, till Sunday."

I did not go to New York that night. I forgot all about going.
Instead, I went to Nancy, to whom I still go whenever I am in trouble
or in doubt.




XXV

A FINE HEROINE, TOO


Friday morning.

Miss Annesley possessed more than the ordinary amount of force and
power of will. Though the knowledge of it was not patent to her, she
was a philosopher. She always submitted gracefully to the inevitable.
She was religious, too, feeling assured that God would provide. She
did not go about the house, moaning and weeping; she simply studied
all sides of the calamity, and looked around to see what could be
saved. There were moments when she was even cheerful. There were no
new lines in her face; her eyes were bright and eager. All persons of
genuine talent look the world confidently in the face; they know
exactly what they can accomplish. As Karloff had advised her, she did
not trouble herself about the future. Her violin would support her
and her father, perhaps in comfortable circumstances. The knowledge
of this gave her a silent happiness, that kind which leaves upon the
face a serene and beautiful calm.

At this moment she stood on the veranda, her hand shading her eyes.
She was studying the sky. The afternoon would be clear; the last ride
should be a memorable one. The last ride! Tears blurred her eyes and
there was a smothering sensation in her throat. The last ride! After
to-day Jane would have a new, strange mistress. If only she might go
to this possible mistress and tell her how much she loved the animal,
to obtain from her the promise that she would be kind to it always.
How mysteriously the human heart spreads its tendrils around the
objects of its love! What is there in the loving of a dog or a horse
that, losing one or the other, an emptiness is created? Perhaps it is
because the heart goes out wholly without distrust to the faithful,
to the undeceiving, to the dumb but loving beast, which, for all its
strength, is so helpless.

She dropped her hand and spoke to James, who was waiting near by for
her orders.

"James, you will have Pierre fill a saddle-hamper; two plates, two
knives and forks, and so forth. We shall ride in the north country
this afternoon. It will be your last ride. To-morrow the horses will
be sold." How bravely she said it!

"Yes, Miss Annesley." Whom were they going to meet in the north
country? "At what hour shall I bring the horses around?"

"At three."

She entered the house and directed her steps to the study. She found
her father arranging the morning's mail. She drew up a chair beside
him, and ran through her own letters. An invitation to lunch with
Mrs. Secretary-of-State; she tossed it into the waste-basket. A
dinner-dance at the Country Club, a ball at the Brazilian legation, a
tea at the German embassy, a box party at some coming play, an
informal dinner at the executive mansion; one by one they fluttered
into the basket. A bill for winter furs, a bill from the dressmaker,
one from the milliner, one from the glover, and one from the florist;
these she laid aside, reckoning their sum-total, and frowning. How
could she have been so extravagant? She chanced to look at her
father. He was staring rather stupidly at a slip of paper which he
held in his trembling fingers.

"What is it?" she asked, vaguely troubled.

"I do not understand," he said, extending the paper for her
inspection.

Neither did she at first.

"Karloff has not done this," went on her father, "for it shows that
he has had it discounted at the bank. It is canceled; it is paid. I
did not have twenty thousand in the bank; I did not have even a
quarter of that amount to my credit. There has been some mistake.
Our real estate agent expects to realize on the home not earlier than
Monday morning. In case it was not sold then, he was to take up the
note personally. This is not his work, or I should have been
notified." Then, with a burst of grief: "Betty, my poor Betty! How
can you forgive me? How can I forgive myself?"

"Father, I am brave. Let us forget. It will be better so."

She kissed his hand and drew it lovingly across her cheek. Then she
rose and moved toward the light. She studied the note carefully.
There was nothing on it save Karloff's writing and her father's and
the red imprint of the bank's cancelation. Out of the window and
beyond she saw James leading the horses to the watering trough. Her
face suddenly grew crimson with shame, and as suddenly as it came the
color faded. She folded the note and absently tucked it into the
bosom of her dress. Then, as if struck by some strange thought, her
figure grew tense and rigid against the blue background of the sky.
The glow which stole over her features this time had no shame in it,
and her eyes shone like the waters of sunlit seas. It must never be;
no it must never be.

"We shall make inquiries at the bank," she said. "And do not be
downcast, father, the worst is over. What mistakes you have made are
forgotten The future looks bright to me."

"Through innocent young eyes the future is ever bright; but as we age
we find most of the sunshine on either side, and we stand in the
shadow between. Brave heart, I glory in your courage. God will
provide for you; He will not let my shadow fall on you. Yours shall
be the joy of living, mine shall be the pain. God bless you! I wonder
how I shall ever meet your mother's accusing eyes?"

"Father, you _must_ not dwell upon this any longer; for my sake
you must not. When everything is paid there will be a little left,
enough till I and my violin find something to do. After all, the
world's applause must be a fine thing. I can even now see the
criticisms in the great newspapers. 'A former young society woman,
well-known in the fashionable circles of Washington, made her
_debut_ as a concert player last night. She is a stunning young
person.' `A young queen of the diplomatic circles, here and abroad,
appeared in public as a violinist last night. She is a member of the
most exclusive sets, and society was out to do her homage.' `One of
Washington's brilliant young horsewomen,' and so forth. Away down at
the bottom of the column, somewhere, they will add that I play the
violin rather well for an amateur." In all her trial, this was the
one bitter expression, and she was sorry for it the moment it escaped
her. Happily her father was not listening. He was wholly absorbed
in the mystery of the canceled note.

She had mounted Jane and was gathering up the reins, while James
strapped on the saddle-hamper. This done, he climbed into the saddle
and signified by touching his cap that all was ready. So they rode
forth in the sweet freshness of that November afternoon. A steady
wind was blowing, the compact white clouds sailed swiftly across the
brilliant heavens, the leaves whispered and fluttered, hither and
thither, wherever the wind listed; it was the day of days. It was the
last ride, and fate owed them the compensation of a beautiful
afternoon.

The last ride! Warburton's mouth drooped. Never again to ride with
her! How the thought tightened his heart! What a tug it was going to
be to give her up! But so it must be. He could never face her
gratitude. He must disappear, like the good fairies in the story-
books. If he left now, and she found out what he had done, she would
always think kindly of him, even tenderly. At twilight, when she took
out her violin and played soft measures, perhaps a thought or two
would be given to him. After what had happened--this contemptible
masquerading and the crisis through which her father had just passed
--it would be impossible for her to love him. She would always regard
him with suspicion, as a witness of her innocent shame.

He recalled the two wooden plates in the hamper. Whom was she going
to meet? Ah, well, what mattered it? After to-day the abyss of
eternity would yawn between them. How he loved her! How he adored the
exquisite profile, the warm-tinted skin, the shining hair!... And he
had lost her! Ah, that last ride!

The girl was holding her head high because her heart was full. No
more to ride on a bright morning, with the wind rushing past her,
bringing the odor of the grasses, of the flowers, of the earth to
tingle her nostrils; no more to follow the hounds on a winter's day,
with the pack baying beyond the hedges, the gay, red-coated riders
sweeping down the field; no more to wander through the halls of her
mother's birthplace and her own! Like a breath on a mirror, all was
gone. Why? What had _she_ done to be flung down ruthlessly? She,
who had been brought up in idleness and luxury, must turn her hands
to a living! Without being worldly, she knew the world. Once she
appeared upon the stage, she would lose caste among her kind. True,
they would tolerate her, but no longer would her voice be heard or
her word have weight.

Soon she would be tossed about on the whirlpool and swallowed up.
Then would come the haggling with managers, long and tiresome
journeys, gloomy hotels and indifferent fare, curious people who
desired to see the one-time fashionable belle; her portraits would be
lithographed and hung in shop-windows, in questionable resorts, and
the privacy so loved by gentlewomen gone; and perhaps there would be
insults. And she was only on the threshold of the twenties, the
radiant, blooming twenties!

[Illustration: "Go home, Colonel--and stay home!"--ACT III.]

During the long ride (for they covered something like seven miles)
not a word was spoken. The girl was biding her time; the man had
nothing to voice. They were going through the woods, when they came
upon a clearing through which a narrow brook loitered or sallied down
the incline. She reined in and raised her crop. He was puzzled. So
far as he could see, he and the girl were alone. The third person,
for whom, he reasoned, he had brought the second plate, was nowhere
in sight.

A flat boulder lay at the side of the stream, and she nodded toward
it. Warburton emptied the hamper and spread the cloth on the stone.
Then he laid out the salad, the sandwiches, the olives, the almonds,
and two silver telescope-cups. All this time not a single word from
either; Warburton, busied with his task, did not lift his eyes to
her.

The girl had laid her face against Jane's nose, and two lonely tears
trailed slowly down her velvety cheeks. Presently he was compelled to
look at her and speak.

"Everything is ready, Miss." He spoke huskily. The sight of her tears
gave him an indescribable agony.

She dropped the bridle-reins, brushed her eyes, and the sunshine of a
smile broke through the troubled clouds.

"Mr. Warburton," she said gently, "let us not play any more. I am too
sad. Let us hang up the masks, for the comedy is done."




XXVI

THE CASTLE OF ROMANCE


How silent the forest was! The brook no longer murmured, the rustle
of the leaves was without sound. A spar of sunshine, filtering
through the ragged limbs of the trees, fell aslant her, and she stood
in an aureola. As for my hero, a species of paralysis had stricken
him motionless and dumb. It was all so unexpected, all so sudden,
that he had the sensation of being whirled away from reality and
bundled unceremoniously into the unreal.... She knew, and had known!
A leaf brushed his face, but he was senseless to the touch of it. All
he had the power to do was to stare at her. . . . She knew, and had
known!

Dick stepped into the brook and began to paw the water, and the
intermission of speech and action came to an end.

"You-and you knew?" What a strange sound his voice had in his own
ears!

"Yes. From the very beginning--I knew you to be a gentleman in
masquerade; that is to say, when I saw you in the police-court. The
absence of the beard confused me at first, but presently I recognized
the gentleman whom I had noticed on board the ship."

So she had noticed him!

"That night you believed me to be your sister Nancy. But I did not
know this till lately. And the night I visited her she exhibited some
photographs. Among these was a portrait of you without a beard."

Warburton started. And the thought that this might be the case had
never trickled through his thick skull! How she must have laughed at
him secretly!

She continued: "Even then I was not sure. But when Colonel Raleigh
declared that you resembled a former lieutenant of his, then I knew."
She ceased. She turned to her horse as if to gather the courage to go
on; but Jane had her nose hidden in the stream, and was oblivious of
her mistress' need.

He waited dully for her to resume, for he supposed that she had not
yet done.

"I have humiliated you in a hundred ways, and for this I want you to
forgive me. I sent the butler away for the very purpose of making
you serve in his stead. But you were so good about it all, with
never a murmur of rebellion, that I grew ashamed of my part in the
comedy. But now--" Her eyes closed and her body swayed; but she
clenched her hands, and the faintness passed away. "But for you, my
poor father would have been dishonored, and I should have been forced
into the arms of a man whom I despise. Whenever I have humiliated
you, you have returned the gift of a kind deed. You will forgive
me?"

"Forgive you? There is nothing for me to forgive on my side, much on
yours. It is you who should forgive me. What you have done I have
deserved." His tongue was thick and dry. How much did she know?

"No, not wholly deserved it." She fumbled with the buttons of her
waist; her eyes were so full that she could not see. She produced an
oblong slip of paper.

When he saw it, a breath as of ice enveloped him. The thing she held
out toward him was the canceled note. For a while he did me the
honor to believe that I had betrayed him.

"I understand the kind and generous impulse which prompted this deed.
Oh, I admire it, and I say to you, God bless you! But don't you see
how impossible it is? It can not be; no, no! My father and I are
proud. What we owe we shall pay. Poverty, to be accepted without
plaint, must be without debts of gratitude. But it was noble and
great of you; and I knew that you intended to run away without ever
letting any one know."

"Who told you?"

"No one. I guessed it."

And he might have denied all knowledge of it!

"Won't you--won't you let it be as it is? I have never done anything
worth while before, and this has made me happy. Won't you let me do
this? Only you need know. I am going away on Monday, and it will be
years before I see Washington again. No one need ever know."

"It is impossible!"

"Why?"

She looked away. In her mind's eye she could see this man leading a
troop through a snow-storm. How the wind roared! How the snow whirled
and eddied about them, or suddenly blotted them from sight! But, on
and on, resolutely, courageously, hopefully, he led them on to
safety.... He was speaking, and the picture dissolved.

"Won't you let it remain just as it is?" he pleaded.

Her head moved negatively, and once more she extended the note. He
took it and slowly tore it into shreds. With it he was tearing up the
dream and tossing it down the winds.

"The money will be placed to your credit at the bank on Monday. We
can not accept such a gift from any one. You would not, I know. But
always shall I treasure the impulse. It will give me courage in the
future--when I am fighting alone."

"What are you going to do?"

"I? I am going to appear before the public,"--with assumed
lightness; "I and my violin."

He struck his hands together. "The stage?"--horrified.

"I must live,"--calmly.

"But a servant to public caprice? It ought not to be! I realize that
I can not force you to accept my gift, but this I shall do: I shall
buy in the horses and give them back to you."

"You mustn't. I shall have no place to put them. Oh!"--with a gesture
full of despair and unshed tears, "why have you done all this? Why
this mean masquerade, this submitting to the humiliations I have
contrived for you, this act of generosity? Why?"

Perhaps she knew the answers to her own questions, but, womanlike,
wanted to be told.

And at that moment, though I am not sure, I believe Warburton's
guarding angel gave him some secret advice.

"You ask me why I have played the fool in the motley?"--finding the
strength of his voice. "Why I have submitted in silence to your just
humiliations? Why I have acted what you term generously? Do you mean
to tell me that you have not guessed the riddle?"

She turned her delicate head aside and switched the grasses with her
riding-crop.

"Well,"--flinging aside his cap, which he had been holding in his
hand, "I will tell you. I wanted to be near you. I wanted to be, what
you made me, your servant. It is the one great happiness that I have
known. I have done all these things because--because, God help me, I
love you! Yes, I love you, with every beat of my heart!"--lifting his
head proudly. Upon his face love had put the hallowed seal. "Do not
turn your head away, for my love is honest. I ask nothing, nothing; I
expect nothing. I know that it is hopeless. What woman could love a
man who has made himself ridiculous in her eyes, as I have made
myself in yours?"--bitterly.

"No, not ridiculous; never that!" she interrupted, her face still
averted.

He strode toward her hastily, and for a moment her heart almost
ceased to beat. But all he did was to kneel at her feet and kiss the
hem of her riding-skirt. He rose hurriedly.

"God bless you, and good-by!" He knew that if he remained he would
lose all control, crush her madly in his arms, and hurt her lips with
his despairing kisses. He had not gone a dozen paces, when he heard
her call pathetically. He stopped.

"Mr. Warburton, surely you are not going to leave me here alone with
the horses?"

"Pardon me, I did not think! I am confused!" he blundered.

"You are modest, too." Why is it that, at the moment a man succumbs
to his embarrassment, a woman rises above hers? "Come nearer,"--a
command which he obeyed with some hesitation. "You have been a groom,
a butler, all for the purpose of telling me that you love me. Listen.
Love is like a pillar based upon a dream: one by one we lay the
stones of beauty, of courage, of faith, of honor, of steadfastness.
We wake, and how the beautiful pillar tumbles about our ears! What
right have you to build up your pillar upon a dream of me? What do
you know of the real woman--for I have all the faults and vanities of
the sex; what do you know of me? How do you know that I am not
selfish? that I am constant? that I am worthy a man's loving?"

"Love is not like Justice, with a pair of scales to weigh this or
that. I do not ask _why_ I love you; the knowledge is all I
need. And you are _not_ selfish, inconstant, and God knows that
you are worth loving. As I said, I ask for nothing."

"On the other hand," she continued, as if she had not heard his
interpolation, "I know you thoroughly. I have had evidence of your
courage, your steadfastness, your unselfishness. Do not misunderstand
me. I am proud that you love me. This love of yours, which asks for
no reward, only the right to confess, ought to make any good woman
happy, whether she loved or not. And you would have gone away without
telling me, even!"

"Yes." He dug into the earth with his riding-boot. If only she knew
how she was crucifying him!

"Why were you going away without telling me?"

He was dumb.

Her arms and eyes, uplifted, appealed to heaven. "What shall I say?
How shall I make him understand?" she murmured. "You love me, and you
ask for nothing? Is it because in spirit my father has committed a
crime?"--growing tall and darting a proud glance at him.

"Good heaven, do not believe that!" he cried,

"What _am_ I to believe?"--tapping the ground with her boot so
that the spur jingled.

A pause.

"Mr. Warburton, do you know what a woman loves in a man? I will tell
you the secret. She loves courage, constancy, and honor, purpose that
surmounts obstacles; she loves pursuit; she loves the hour of
surrender. Every woman builds a castle of romance and waits for
Prince Charming to enter, and once he does, there must be a game of
hide and seek. Perhaps I have built my castle of romance, too. I
wait for Prince Charming, and--a man comes, dressed as a groom.
There has been a game of hide and seek, but somehow he has tripped.
Will you not ask me if I love you?"

"No, no! I understand. I do not want your gratitude. You are
meeting generosity with generosity. I do not want your gratitude."--
brokenly. "I want your love, every thought of your mind, every beat
of your heart. Can you give me these, honestly?"

She drew off a glove. Her hand became lost in her bosom. When she
drew it forth she extended it, palm upward. Upon it lay a faded,
withered rose. Once more she turned her face away.

He was at her side, and the hand and rose were crushed between his
two hands.

"Can you give what I ask? Your love, your thoughts, your heart-
beats?"

It was her turn to remain dumb.

"Can you?" He drew her toward him perhaps roughly, being unconscious
of his strength and the nervous energy which the sight of the rose
had called into being.

"Can we give those things which are--already--given?"

Only Warburton and the angels, or rather the angels and Warburton, to
get at the chronological order of things, heard her, so low had grown
her voice.

You may tell any kind of secret to a horse; the animal will never
betray you. Warburton would never tell me what followed; and I am too
sensible to hang around the horses in hopes of catching them in the
act of talking over the affair among themselves. But I can easily
imagine this bit of equine dialogue:

_Jane_: Did you ever see such foolishness?

_Dick_: Never! And with all this good grass about!

Whatever _did_ follow caused the girl to murmur: "This is the
lover I love; this is the lover I have been waiting for in my castle
of romance. I am glad that I have lost all worldly things; I am glad,
glad! When did you first learn that you loved me?"

(Old, very old; thousands of years old, and will grow to be many
thousand years older. But from woman's lips it is the sweetest
question man ever heard.)

"At the _Gare du Nord_, in Paris; the first time I saw you."

"And you followed me across the ocean?"--wonderingly.

"And when did you first learn that you loved me?" he asked.

(Oh, the trite phrases of lovers' litany.)

"When I saw you in the police-court. Mercy! what a scandal! I am to
marry my butler!"

_Jane:_ They are laughing!

_Dick:_ That is better than weeping. Besides, they will probably
walk us home. (Wise animal!)

He was not only wise but prophetic. The lovers _did_ walk the
horses home. Hand in hand they came back along the road, through the
flame and flush of the ripening year. The god of light burned in the
far west, blending the brown earth with his crimson radiance, while
the purple shadows of the approaching dusk grew larger and larger.
The man turned.

"What a beautiful world it is!" he said.

"I begin to find it so," replied the girl, looking not at the world,
but at him.

THE END




Postscript:

I believe they sent William back for the saddle-hamper and my jehu's
cap.






End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Man on the Box, by Harold MacGrath

*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MAN ON THE BOX ***

This file should be named mnntb10.txt or mnntb10.zip
Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks get a new NUMBER, mnntb11.txt
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, mnntb10a.txt

Produced by Duncan Harold, Charles Franks
and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team.

Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
unless a copyright notice is included.  Thus, we usually do not
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.

We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance
of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
even years after the official publication date.

Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month.  A
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
and editing by those who wish to do so.

Most people start at our Web sites at:
http://gutenberg.net or
http://promo.net/pg

These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).


Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement
can get to them as follows, and just download by date.  This is
also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.

http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or
ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03

Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90

Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
as it appears in our Newsletters.


Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)

We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work.  The
time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc.   Our
projected audience is one hundred million readers.  If the value
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text
files per month:  1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+
We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002
If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end.

The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks!
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.

Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated):

eBooks Year Month

    1  1971 July
   10  1991 January
  100  1994 January
 1000  1997 August
 1500  1998 October
 2000  1999 December
 2500  2000 December
 3000  2001 November
 4000  2001 October/November
 6000  2002 December*
 9000  2003 November*
10000  2004 January*


The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.

We need your donations more than ever!

As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people
and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut,
Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois,
Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts,
Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio,
Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South
Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West
Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming.

We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones
that have responded.

As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.

In answer to various questions we have received on this:

We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
request donations in all 50 states.  If your state is not listed and
you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
just ask.

While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
donate.

International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
ways.

Donations by check or money order may be sent to:

Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
PMB 113
1739 University Ave.
Oxford, MS 38655-4109

Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
method other than by check or money order.

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154.  Donations are
tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law.  As fund-raising
requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states.

We need your donations more than ever!

You can get up to date donation information online at:

http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html


***

If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
you can always email directly to:

Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>

Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.

We would prefer to send you information by email.


**The Legal Small Print**


(Three Pages)

***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START***
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to.

*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.

ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks,
is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
distribute it in the United States without permission and
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook
under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.

Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
any commercial products without permission.

To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.

LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims
all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.

If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
receive it electronically.

THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.

Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
may have other legal rights.

INDEMNITY
You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
following that you do or cause:  [1] distribution of this eBook,
[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook,
or [3] any Defect.

DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
or:

[1]  Only give exact copies of it.  Among other things, this
     requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
     eBook or this "small print!" statement.  You may however,
     if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable
     binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
     including any form resulting from conversion by word
     processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
     *EITHER*:

     [*]  The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
          does *not* contain characters other than those
          intended by the author of the work, although tilde
          (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
          be used to convey punctuation intended by the
          author, and additional characters may be used to
          indicate hypertext links; OR

     [*]  The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at
          no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
          form by the program that displays the eBook (as is
          the case, for instance, with most word processors);
          OR

     [*]  You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
          no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
          eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
          or other equivalent proprietary form).

[2]  Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this
     "Small Print!" statement.

[3]  Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
     gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
     already use to calculate your applicable taxes.  If you
     don't derive profits, no royalty is due.  Royalties are
     payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
     the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
     legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
     periodic) tax return.  Please contact us beforehand to
     let us know your plans and to work out the details.

WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
in machine readable form.

The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
Money should be paid to the:
"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."

If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
hart@pobox.com

[Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only
when distributed free of all fees.  Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by
Michael S. Hart.  Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be
used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be
they hardware or software or any other related product without
express permission.]

*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*

